A Grammatical Word Index To Chhandogya Upanishad
A Grammatical Word Index To Chhandogya Upanishad
A Grammatical Word Index To Chhandogya Upanishad
CHAND0GY.\-UPANISA'
iPrcsenteC) to
of tbe
IHnivcreitp of ^Toronto
bs
-^
( THE
GRAMMATICAL INDEX
TO THE
CHANDOGYA-UPANISAD
BY
in the
Ph.D.
University of Nashtnlle:
^,,^^
A,
A^
Copyright,
BY
Charles Edgar
E-P
iqoo
I.ittlb
svo-
PRAECEPTORI A TQ VE AMICO
D D D
'
AVCTOR
(iii)
PREFACE
The
first
following
aim
is
work has
Its
a twofold purpose.
material of this
the
grammatical and
lexical data to
serve as a
and
Bohtlingk's text has been taken as the standard,
deviations therefrom have been recorded in Appendix A.
These changes are, in the main, those sugall
ticed.
of
in the
word
(cf.
to fhitatc^
to delete.,
for such a
word
is
sufiicient
excuse for
its
manufacture.
(v)
vi
Preface
The method
of treatment throughout the GrammatIndex may not be found uniform in all particulars.
This was not thought necessary or even desirable. As
ical
regards text, for example, it was considered best to presword iti so as to show its loose handling ; as re-
ent the
tempt
was made
as regards definitions,
exclude
no
ef-
to
all
opment
in all
matters of
detail.
all
The enormous
labor involved
such deficiencies.
have constantly
do, I
relied
on the
St.
mentators.
Besides the
many
Professor Tolman,
have to thank
TABLE OF CONTENTS
Page
Preface
ix
i
Appendices
A.
in
179
183
191
D. Plutated Words
I93
(vii)
Chandogyu-Upanisad.
Bo.
Wh.AJP.
American Journal
Leipzig, 1889,
lingk,
of
Pliilok)g}
XL
Wh.Gr.
Wh.RVF.
The Roots,
Grammar
Sanskrit
(2nd
\'^erb-forms, etc.,
Sanskrit Language, by
ney.
W.
by
D.Whitney.
BR.
ccL),
W.
of
the
D. \Vhil-
Leipzig, 1S85.
Sanskrit- Worterbuch,
herausgegeben
von der kaiserlichen Akademie der
Wissenschaften, bearbeitet von Otto
St.
Petersburg, 185575.
Capp.
M.M.
Upanishads
F.
Gr.Wb.
The
Sev-
Max
Boston, 1891.
Volume
Muller.
I.
by
Oxford, 1S79.
made
current by such
(ix)
works
as
Wh.Gr., Capp., and Lanman's Sanskrit Readand therefore need not be given in detail.
er arc used,
The
following
call for
explanation
a.
Adjective,
cert.
-ly.
nm.pr.
subst.
Substantive,
nm.ag.
syl.,
-11.
vbl.f.
-ly.
Syllable, -bles.
Verbal
f.
in periphrastic perfect.
-|-
Composition (with).
With or
without.
ings, etc.
[*]
etc.
word
inserted.
word
rejected.
A GRAMMATICAL INDEX
a
1
St.
a-pron.
ah am;
agni
pers.,
see
pers,,
see
ram
an-)
at
a.
not
moving
ras (nom.sg.m.)
akrta
VII.
-slni (nom.clu.)
-tam (acc.sg.m.)
VIII. aksetrajSa
13.1.
tvitho2it cffo>-t.
-jiias
1
VII.3I.I.
a.
tiot
knowing-
-7
(acc.dii.) A"II.3.i.
n.
agada
aksa m. a
-sau
cert, fruit.
eye,
-snil (instr.sg.)
-snas
IV. 17.9.
(gen.sg.)
I.7.4
15.
aksara
syl.
freefrain disease,,
(loc.sg.) I.7.51.
a.
zvell.
(3t.).
sani
1
III. 17.
6.
the co7intry.
akrtva grd.
aksan
1. 6.7.
indestructible,, im-
perishable.
uncreated.
a.
a.
tam (nom.sg.n.)
VIII. 1.6.
25.2.
n. eye.
aksita
ivill.
VIII.3.5.
33.3.
aksi
VII.9.1.
akamacara
VI. 16. 3.
(nom.sg.)
4-
II.10.3.
i,4.5(2t-)-
vowels
a-(bcfore
I.i.
2.14;
i,5.7'8(2t.);
idam.
2
(nom.-acc.sg.)
IV. agni
VIII. 7.4.
n. syllable,, esp.
om.
va.Jire^
Agni (god
of
fire),
the
6.
I3.I. 11.3.1,3
(1)
agnitva
20.I
31. 1.
1S.3.
IV.3.1
III. 13. 3
6.1,2
5.1
7.1
(2t.).
S.I
aja
III.I9.I.
2
VII.I2.I. VIII.
not stvalloxvcd.
emph.
VI. 13.
afiga
nim
IT. 12.2.
(acc.sg-.)
III. 15.6. IV.6.1 ; 7.1 ;
8.1
17.
nina
1.
3; i8-3(dat.sg.)
II. 24. 5.
(abl. -gen.sg.) 1. 3. 5.
II. 22. 1. III.13.S. IV.
6.1 ; 7.1 ; S.I ; 17.2. V.
nau
4.2;
5.
V.9.2.
(acc.pl.)
IV.io.i,
V. 10.10,
n. q7iality ofjii-c.
(nom.sg.) VI.4. i.
agnihotra n. Jire-sacrtjice.
(acc.sg.)
V.24.1,
1.2. 10.
11.19.1,2.
aiigara m. a coal.
-ras (nom.sg.)
VI. 7. 3.
-ram
VI. 7.5.
(acc.sg.)
-ras (nom.jDl.)
5.1
II.
6.1
2.1.
7.1
8.1.
-ran (acc.pl.)
V.34.1.
or
iinibs
gi (nom.sg.m.)
n.
Jirst.
re (loc.sg.) 1.8.3
-ras (nom.sg.)
rasam
acitta
II. 19.3.
10.5.
1.3. 10.
a.
-tas (nom.sg.m.)
in-
^"^T.
5.2(3t.).
a.
unshaken^
im-
fcrisJiahle.
tam
(nom.sg.n.)
17.6.
;
1.3. to.
(acc.sg.)
tJioiightlms^
considerate.
acyuta
3,3.5(2t.)-
agra
II. 19.2.
(gen. pi.)
arigiras m.nm.pr.
-vam
ram
-ganam
angin a. having
members.
2; 14.2.
agnitva
24.3.
2,4.
nin
II. 12.1,2.
(loc.sg.)
V.2.4,5(4t.)
2
mcD/hcr^
limh^
body.
V.4.1
VI.4.l(2t.).
nayas
I V.I. 5.
pel.
13.1,2.
-gesii (loc.pl.)
lies
2.S.
2 aiiga n.
-gena(instr.sg.)
(instr.sg.) 111.6.1,
naye
VI.2.l(2t.),
I .
a.
agrasta
21.2
II
aja m. goat.
III.
afijali
jas
1
11.6.
(nom.pl.)
atha
ati adv. -prep, beyond.
afijali
m.
holloived atijana
tJic
hands
together
(for measure or wor-
ship).
animan m.
perhuman
ma
13.3;
12.3;
manam
(acc.sg.)
2.
guage.
dl
(nom.
VIII
6.1.
(nom.sg.m.)
H-3-
small
nam
VI.
5-i'2,3.
a.
nvyas
mtitutc,
san
remaining
1.
10.5.
II.
acc.pl. m.)
IV. 9. 3.
VI.I2.l(3t.); I3.2(2t.).
VI.
VIII. 1. 2
T''*
1,^ ,
V.IO.6.
left
.^
(nom.^il.f.)
V.18.
(ace sg.m.)
ati^esa a.
over.
12. 1.
1.3.5;
beyond meas-
a.
I.
atofnic.
7.
VII.
m.)
urement.
J.
anu
sg.
i5-4(3t.)-
(gen.sg.)
anistha
a.supl. smallest.
thas
over talkative^
excessive lan-
a.
7csing
13.2.
mnas
II.io.i,
(acc.sg.n.)
6.
14.
VI.
deathless.
(nom.sg.)
2,34; S.6; 9.4; 10.3; ativadin
II-3;
i.e.)
beyond death
a.
atimrtyu
VI.6. i,
3; 15-3; 16.3.
(^beyond
yu
faculty).
a.
ivithozet Inhabitant.
p7it
1.8.
8. 1,
3.2(2t.)
9.
102
1* TTI2
111,-,
lU.-^,-|.
adv.
noxi\
so,
then
VII.25.I,3(2t.). VIII.
tinuati ve )
4.2.
ginneth
athakara
book).
adar^aniya
1.2.3,4,5,9,7;
3.i,3(2t.),6,S; 5.1,3,5;
7-^.4
6.5(-t.).6(3t.);
3.2,4,5(21.);
4.1
5.1
(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.);
7-4;
ivi,5(2t.);
6.
9-1
i2.4(4t.),5.
8; 12.1.
athakara
2.2
II. 1. 3;
the sound
atha.
10.
22.4(2t.)
111.2.1
5,9,13,14.
1
4.1
9.1
5.1
lo.i
I.I
H-M
34'5.7;
7;
7.1
ras
24.2
(nom.sg.) I.13.1.
atharvangiras m.nm.pr. the
race of
Annriras.
-rasas (noni.iDl.)
i5-5'6
IV. 1. 2
\/ad. eat.
18.1,2;
19.3.
12.
15.5; 16.4
V.I. 6. 1 2, 1 3
atsi
1
13.1
17.5,6.
2.4,6,7;
(2t.),i4(2t.);
9.1;
3.4;
10;
16.
13.1
i;
17.
10.3,5,7,8,
14.1
22.1;
15.1
30. 1
21.
23.1;
24.2.
VI.7.2,4(2t.);
8.5;
13-152;
ii-2(3t-);
2;
14-
i^-i'-
i5-2(3t-)5
8.1;
(2t.);
lo.i
i;
22.1;
13.
17-1;
15-3;
19.1
9.i(2t.);
i.i(2t.)
i(3t-);
18.1
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
12.2;
2;
atti
20.1
13.2;
16.2;
14.2;
V.10.6; 12.2;
3.7.
2;
V.
15.
17.2.
(prcs.ind.act.sg.)
14.2;
15.2;
IV.
13.
16.2;
17.1,2.
attha
(pres.incl.act.pl.)
V.17.1.
adama
1. 1
(prcs.subj.act.pl.)
2.5.
VII.3.i(4t.); adatka
(2t.).
III.4.
1,2.
17.3,3,4
^6.3,5;
Atharvan and
S.i
13.2
a.
kam
toothless.
(acc.sg.n.)
\"III.
14.1.
adadana
nam
a.
ftot
giving.
VIII.
(acc.sg.m.)
21.
8-5-_
24.i(2t.);
VIII. I.
25.1,
2(2t.).
1,6;
2.2,3,4,5,6,7,8,9;
-yam
(acc.sg.n.)
1.
2.4.
addha
addha adv. indeed^
2; 6.S.
truly.
III. 14.4.
adya adv.
ana
W.
now., to-day.
VIII.8.5.
4.5.
m. non-sccr.
adrastr
adhisthana
a.
VII.9.1.
without a sec-
(nom.sg'.n.) VI. 2.
-i-e
VIII.
n.
st tidying.,
reading.
lozve?'.
a.
2.
adhyayana
l(3t.),3.
adhara
standing-
nam (nom.sg.)
unique.
ond.,
yam
n.
place^ abode.
-ta (nom.sg.)
advitiya
III.iS.i(2t.),
IV.3.2.
adhipati m. lord., ruler.
-tis
(nom.sg.) V.3.6.
2(2t.).
IV. i.
(nom.pl.m.)
4,6.
1. 2.
14;
adharanc
a.
14. 1.
adharma m.
?mrighteo7is-
ncss.
VII.
-yiis (nom.sg.)
mam
(acc.sg.)
/
,1.
grotmd^ down.,
I V.I. 8.
IV. 16.2.
apaniti
Too
beloxv.
l-pfa
VII.35.i(2t.),
2.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
breathe
in,
re-
spire.
adhi adv.-prep.
above.,
praniti
on.,
concerni)ig.,on acco7i?it
of.
actual per-
fortner of sacrifce.
2.1.
the
esp.
V.3.2.
gods.
1.3.
5.
(pres.ppl.act.
nom.pl.) V.i.8,9,io,ii.
ref-
pranantas
VI.2.3,4.
adhidaivatam adv. in
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
I-3-3-
ana-
pron.st.3pers.,
idam.
see
ana
2
anististhant
-nan (nom.sg.m.)
1.
3.
34(3t-)5-
anadyamana
nas
a.
nom.sg. m.)
IV.
sacre.
IV. 3. 7.
(nom.sg.)
ananuvidya grcl. w^?/ Jiav- anadara a. without respect
or consideration., ining discovered. VIII.
-ris
different.
1.6; 8.4.
grd. without
crivinp' indication. V.
ananugisya
(nom.sg.m.)
III. 14.
2,4.
anarambhana
3-4-
learned.
ananta
tas
ras
nani
(nom.pl.n.) II.9.4.
ana^akayana
U^nitless.
a.
a. giving or
having no support.
n.
non-cat-
ijig^fastiftg.
3.4(3t-)-
vatas
anandha
IV.6.'4.
(acc.pl.)
a. not blind.
ananna
non-food.,
(nom.-acc.sg.) IV.
V.2.1.
3.7.
anapanant
i)tiS
a.
out.
not
forth,
im- anirukta
properfood.
nam
re.
10.1,3.
n.
a.
spoken un-
clearly, obscure.
-tas (nom.sg.m.)
1.
13.3.
II. 22. 1.
breath- anististhant
a.
accomplish-
anu
anta
qucncc
of.
IV. 3. 2,4;
V.
17.9.
19.2; 20.2;
IT -7'>0
\^ TIT
3.i(2t.),4;
2T
'>
f.
fcrmissiou.
(nom.-acc.sg.n.,acc.
sg.m.)
I.
VI. 16.
1.2.3.
VII.2.i(2t.)
7.1.
VIII. 3. 1.
VI. 16.
-tcna (instr.sg.)
I.
VIII.3.2.
a.
anrtapidhana
having a
I.i.S(2t.).
-(noiii.sc^.)
anutkranta
-tam
cover offalsehood.
-nas (nom.sg.m.) VIII.
12.4.
9.1,2;
anujna
n.
untr/ie, false;
falsehood.
1.
6.
a.
a. jiot
departed
VIII.
-nas (nom.pl.m.)
or escaped.
tas
^"III.
(noni.sg.m.)
best^
most highest.,
without a supea.
III.
(loc.pl.)
anupatapin
a.
not
3.7.
ill.
pi (nom.sg.ni.)
16.
VI.
1.
thus.,
a.
not knozving.,
without this
knowledge.
VIII.
-dam
IV. 17.
(acc.sg.)
io(2t.).
4.2.
receiving.
1.7.
0]l.
VIII.
8.4.
anupana
fahri-
-dhas (nom.sg.ni.)
anevarfivid
rior.
-mcsu
a.
catinp" tintnitli.
6.4.
anuttama
anrtabhisaihdha
n.
drink.
-nam (nom.sg.)
anucanamanin
a.
(n.)
prep. close
10.3.
thinking
(acc.sg.)
2.10.
(2t.).
tc
(loc.sg.)
-tcsu (loc.pl.)
oneself learned.
1.2, 3.
object.,
to.
-tam
-tat (abl.sg.
1.
end.,
4-
V 111.
VI.
.5
3.2
V.3.6.
VIII. 7.
antatas
1. 2,
9(2t.); 3-12.
he-
7.5. III.
13.7; 14.
i2.4,8(2t.),9;
V.8.1;
3(3t.),4.
9.1.
VIII.14.1.
antariksa n. mid- reg-ioji^
atmosphere.
11.2.1,2;
6.2(2t.).
1
17,1. III. 1.
6.3.
VII.6.1
lo.i.
III. 14.3.
a.
divelling-
a.
III.
antarhrdaya
a.
in
the
10.1,3.
-dhe(loc.sg.) VIII.9.1,2.
anna n. foodj esp. boiled
rice ; g-rain.
nam
'>
a.
Utnited.
vat (nom.sg.n.) 1. 8. 8.
antavela f. Jinal hour,
hour of death.
I.
(nom.-acc.sg.)
ii.9(2t.);
8.4;
3.6;
i2.2,5(2t.);
(2t.);
II.
13.2.
IV.3.6,8
10.4,6;
6.2;
I.I.
7.2;
13.
i2.2(2t.);
i4.2(2t.);
15.3
i6.3(2t.);
17.2
i8.i(2t.).
VI.
5.1.
VII.4.
2; 7.1; 9.l(3t.),2(3t.);
-nena
6;
heart.
9.
dham(nom.sg.n.) VIII.
io.i(2t.)
15.1.
antavant
VIII.4.2
2.4(2t.);
atmosphei'e.
ras (nom.sg.m.)
V.i.
1,2.
(2t.)
atnid the
IV.io.i.
-dhas (nom.sg.m.)
2(2t.);
II. 24.9.
-tc (dat.sg.)
andha
III. 1 1.5.
blind.
a.
V.2.i(2t.);
IV.9.4.
the at7nosphcrc.
antariksodara
-sine (dat.sg.)
-sinas (acc.pl.)
22.2.
"1V.17.1.
-se (loc.so.)
antariksaksit
IV.
15.5.
8.1
-sat (abl.sg.)
ill
1. 3.
(nom.-acc.sg.)
7;
9; 13.2.
VIII.I.l(2t.),2,3.
-sam
anna
26.1.
(instr.sg.)
A' 1. 7.
8.4.
-ne (loc.sg.)
I-3.6.
annapati
annapati m.
ic
lo7-d
annapana
offood.
1.
(voc.sg.)
anyatara
2.5.
fo od and
yena
VI.2.4.
V.19.
(instr.sg.)
drink.
TOO
VIII. 2. 7.
the
m,
luorld
annapanaloka
anya pron. a. another^ othand
driftk.
er^ else.
offood
kena (instr.sg.) ^'III.
-yas (nom.sg.m.) 1.1.6.
-lie
(noni.clu.)
VII.24.2.
2.7.
consisting^ of
VII.24.i(6t.).
21.3.
VIII.3.2.
-yam
VI.
(nom.sg.n.)
II.S.3.
VII.9.
ye
(nom.pl. m.)
nom.sg.f.
IV. 3.
annadya
yas
nom.pl. f.)
(eating of)
9.
I-3-5-
VIII.
a.
Ill.i.
1.
11. 2.
compar. one of
IV. 16.
ZA-
ram
food.
-yam (nom.sg.)
tzvo.
-ra (nom.sg.f.)
8.
n.
10.2;
2.
IV.3.8. anyatara
)
1.
6.6.
to eat.
das (nom.sg.m.) 1. 3. 7
13.4. U.S. 3 ; 12.2
14.
111.13.1,3.
VII.
IV.3.8(2t.)
ing food
1.1.6.
-yasya (gen.sg.)
yasmin
(loc.sg.)
24.2.
2.
a.
III.
(dat.sg. )
1.6.
12.2.
-vatas (acc.pl.)
2.
V.ii.
(acc.sg.m.)
yasmai
1
food.
yam
annada
II.
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
3-
annamaya
-di
yat
(acc.sg.f.
2(2t.),3.
IV. 16.
lO
anyatra
apara
yas
V1
oiherwisc.
I.I 2.
15.1.
otherwise. ap
adv.
anyatha
a.
anyarajan
xvatcr.
f.
upas
VII.25.2.
Iiavi?ig an-
i;
(nom.pl.m.) VII.
4.1
12.
of another
a.
anyadrga
VI.2.4; 5.2
VII. 4.2
8.3.
kind.
apas
6.
10.
26.1.
i(3t.);
V.2.2; 3
14.3.
2.1
IV.3.2
5.1.
3; 9.1.
25.2.
1. 1.2
(nom.pl.)
III. 1. 2;
8.4.
other as ruler.
janas
yam
VIII.11.3;
(2t.),4,6.
VIII
(nom.sg.m.).
(acc.pl.)
V.16.1.
anvayatta a. connected
with (ace).
-ta
10,11;
tas
1.
(nom.sg.f.)
3,5,6,7,8.
tani
I,2(2t.);
111.16.1,3,5.
adbhyas
II. 9.
8.6.
4;
I
m.
anvaharyapacana
sont ]icrn
f.
after.
to
VI. 2.
VII.io.2(2t.);
1. 1.2
VI.4. 1, 2,3,4,6;
6.
VII. 10.2.
(2t.).
11.4.1,2
VIII.7.4.
IV. 14.2.
apaciti
IV. 1. 7.
-(nom.sg.)
anvestavya grdv.
ill-
(abl.pl.)
ajDsu (loc.pl.)
apa
vesticratioji.
sought
3.
IV. 12.1.
searching-
III.
VI.8.4,
(gen.pl.)
8.5.
V.18.2.
10.
i.i.
apam
the
sacrijicial
-nas (nom.sg.)
7.1
6.
2,4.
anvesana
A^2.2.
1.6.
II. 9. 2,
(nom.pl.n.)
II.l(2t.).
adbhis (instr.pl.)
10.9,
11.4,5,6,7,8,9.
(noni.jDl.m.)
VII. 2. 1
4.
f.
axve^ honor.
1.
-tyai (dat.sg.)
1.9.
be apara pron.a. farther^ other.,
latter.
aparapaksa
-rani (acc.pl. n.)
Vin.9.
11.
io.4(3t.);
3(3t.);
aparapaksa m. latter or
dark half of a mo)ith.
sam
sat
V.10.3.
(acc.sg.)
V.10.3.
invincible^ im-
(abl.sg-.)
a.
aparajita
conquerablc.
-ta (nom.sg.f.) VIII. 5. 3.
aparahna m. afternoon.
-nat (abl.sg.)
-nc
a.
7iot
1.
evil removed.
a.
1. 2.
9.
7.1,3.
zvith
darkness removed.
apahati
( acc.pl.
f.
V11
removal^
(nom.sg.)
VI.7.3,5.
9.1
IV
24.4
VII.5.3;8
13-1
5-3
cover.
-nam (nom.sg.)
VIII.
without desire
a.
for drink.
sas
7.1,3.
ig k tic ken;
M M
.
hive).
2.
III.i.i.
not fxed^
gent., attentive.
tas
apahantr m. destroyer.
-ta (nom.sg.)
-nas (nom.sg.)
M.
(nom.sg.m.)
I.3.12.
II 2 2 3
I-3.I'
ont-breatJiijig^ ex-
piraiion (M.
brca thing).
13.3.
V. 10.10;
1.
-pas (nom.sg.)
.
I.
apana m.
15.
apratisthita a.
uncertain.
de-
1 1
struction.
tis
III. II. 6;
1.2,3.
6.
kan
(loc.sg.)
apipasa
seeing.
apahatatamaska
V.21.2.
3-I-
-ma (nom.sg.m.)
V.21.1.
(dat.sg.)
apidhana
11.9.6,7.
II. 1 4.
(loc.sg.)
apa^yant
-naya
ne
api
3(2t.)-
II
apravartin
doxun-
apramada
a.
not negligent^
intent upon.
V.21.1.
3. 3.
HI. apravartin
a.
not flo-iving
forth^ inactive.
12
-ti
III. 12.9.
(nom.sg.n.)
tinlm
(acc.sg.f.
III.
12.9.
a.
apranant
i:i
not brcatJilug
}iot breath-
M.
(AI.
ing uf).
nan (nom.sg.m.)
34(3t-)'5g rd
aprapya
apriyavettr
3.
I.I.
m.
'without
VI II. 9.1
not
(nom.sg.)
VIII. 10.
(nom.sg.n., acc.sg.
m.)
apsumant
lo.i
8.3;
7.4;
-yas (nom.pl.m.)
I.4.4.
2.10.
-5-
near.
33;
III. 1.4;
4-3;
2.3;
VIII.
5-3-
a.
(nom.sg.m.)
a.
xvith eyes
covered.
ivater.
II.4.
abala
V.I 5. 1.
I.I.
6.4.
having Tvater,
maintaining oneself abhinaddhaksa
man
1.4.4,5.
2,4.
iti
dangerous,
th ings.
ta
a.
safe; n. safety.
2in pleasant
Jcels
abhaya
yam
1.
non-theolo-
VIII.3.4;
.
reaching.
lo.i
abrahmana m.
-sas (nom.sg.m.)
VI.
I4.l(2t.).
a.
lanam
(gen.pl.) IV.4.5.
-sam
14.
(acc.sg.m.)
manam
VI.
1,
desire.
-das (nom.pl.)
abhinahana
(acc.sg.) VIII.
V.8.1.
n. fetter, bo7id.
abhivyahara m. utterance.
abhisayam amrtatva
ray a
as
(dat.sg.
VII 1. 2.4/
abhisayam adv.
inf.)
against
m.
abhya^a
amutra adv.
expectation^
VIIL
there.
1.6.
amula
13
with
a.
no
VI. S.
-lam (nom.sg.n.)
hope.
1.
-fas (nom.sg.)
II. 1.4.
3. 12.
3.5-
V. amrta
111,19.4.
root,
xuithout basis.
immortal :
a.
n. (i)
immortality
(2) immortal drink, nectar,
ambrosia.
io.7(2t.).
n. rain-cloud.
abhra
-ram (nom.sg.)
V.5.1
VIII. 12. 2.
10.5,6.
-tas (nom.sg.m.)
ama- Vedic
this, he.
amata
a.
-tarn
7.1,2,3,4.
pron.st,3pers.,
V.2.6.
zcntJiought.
thought. VI 1. 1 8. 1,
a. withotd mind.
(nom.pl. )
amantr
m.
ama
adv.
V.
i . 1 1
moon.
8.3;
7.4;
lo.i
VII. 9.1.
near.
ii.i
14. 1,
I-4-5.
VIII.
-tasya (gen.sg.)
V.2.6.
amavasya
IV. 15. 1.
VIII.3.4,5;
12. 1,
-tas (nom.pl.m.-f.)
Ill, 1. 2; 2.1
at home,
IO.l(2t.),
I(2t.),3(2t.);
12.6.
;
-ta (nom.sg.f.
non-thinker.,
simpleton.
-ta (nom.sg.)
7.i(2t.),3
(2t.); 8.i(2t.),3(2t.);9.
VII.24.1.
amanas
ace.
m-^-
1.4.4,5.
3(2t.)
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
I>45-
(nom.-acc.sg.n.,
sg.m.)
i(2t.),3(2t.);
VL1.3; 4.5.
amatva grd. not having
nasas
tam
3.1
1.
;
4. 4.
4.1
5.1,4.
-tani
(nom.pl.n.)
111-5.
4(2t.).
f.
-tanam
amrtatva
(gen.pl.)
n.
III. 5.4.
immortality.
amogha
vam
II. 22. 2
(acc.ss^.)
a.
/'//fallible^
au-
(nom.pl.m.) VII.
-tam (acc.sg.m.)
14.2.
ayajamana
uoi
a.
sacri-
Jicing, impious.
(acc.sg-.m.)
VIII.
are
emph.pcl. of address
(BR., not in Capp.).
I^^-i-355'7'S;
arcis i.Jlame.
-(nom.sg.)
6.1
8.5.
-sam
1.2. 12.
-yam
1,2.12.
(acc.sg.)
(acc.sg.) VIII. 5. 4.
n. forest.
V.io.i.
-ye (loc.sg.)
n. Jtcruiit life
-sas (abl.sg.)
V.IO.I.
arnava
a.
-van
a.
.IV. 15.5.
wavinsr
waving- ;;
m.
(nom.-acc.du.m.)
tile;
m.
ait/t,
business, op-
V.ii.
6-
ardha m.
-dham
or
er,
5.1
IV. 15.5
portunity.
thena
(instr.sg.)
0-
ari
S.I.
VIII.5.3,4.
aranyayana
nam
V.4.1
;
(acc.sg.)
aranya
7.1
2.3,5.
V.IO.I.
-yas (nom.sg.)
-ram
III. 15.
3-
luck, die.
the
arista
aya m. course ;
yas
nam
of
occurrences as voc.sg.,
spicious.
ghas
some
translate
V1IL6.6.
23.2.
amogha
ar vane
side, place.
V. 3.4,6,
turned towards
(acc.sg.)
a.
downwards, coming
near ;
n.
ace. as adv.
ak
4-
(acc.sg. n.)
Ill, 10.
avidya
\/arh
-aficas (nom.pl.)
s/arh he xvorthy.
-hati
1.7.6,8.
(prcs.iiul.acL.sg.)
12.3; 13.
not speaking.
intermedi-
f.
nal point.
1.5.
alamkara
omafnenta-
tion.
rena
1.
a.
avantaradig
V.3.6
(acc.sg.)
avakin
IV. 1
(nom.pl.)
-kI(nom.sg.) 111.14.2,4.
IV.4.5.
f. veneration.
arhana
nam
-sas
VIII.
(instr.sg.)
V.6.1.
-9as (nom.pl.)
avi ni. sheep.
-vayas (nom.pl.)
II. 6.1
iS.i.
alabdhva
grasping:
alpa
a.
-withotif
grd.
VI.8.2(2t.).
pam (nom.sg.n.)
VII.
VII. 23. 1,
-pe (loc.sg.)
pas (nom.pl.m.)
VII.
6.1.
vit
ing.
a.
tmdistin-
guishcd.
-tarn
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
VI.1.3;
knozving
VII.
17.1.
avijnata
24.l(3t.).
a.
undiscem-
-nan (nom.sg.m.)
sjnall, Jinite.
alpavid
a.
avijanant
4.5,7.
avijnatr m. non-discemer.,
one who does not unVII.
little.
(nom.sg.m.)
derstand.
I.
3.9.
not speaking.
V.i.S.
-ntas (nom.pl.)
avadant
a.
-ta (nom.sg.)
VII.9.1.
avitti f. the not finding
.
-tya (instr.sg.)
avittva grd. iiot
1.
11.3.
having
found. 1.3.9.
avabhrtha m. bathing af- aviddha a. unhurt.
ter sacrifice.
dhas (nom.sg.m.)
thas
1 1 1.
17.
4.2.
VIII.
(nom.sg.)
avidya
5-
avarapurusa
m. younger
man., descendant.
f.
lack of knoivl-
edge, ignorance.
-(nom.sg.)
I.i.io.-
avidvans a9arira
i6
avidvans
not knowings
a.
a9is
itmvise.
dvan (nom.sg.m.)
9,10,11
V.I
I.io,
adv.
as
instr.
hi
indisci'ifuhzately^
(fut.j^pl.act.
V.2.2.
nom.pl.)
itam
(pass.ppl.nom.-acc.
VI.::)-i.3;
sg.n.)
yamanasya
(instr.sg.)
VIII.
VI. 6.2,
4-.
-i9isati
15.1.
avyathamana
a.
not stag.
gcrlng.
nas
(nom.sg.m.)
VII.
4-3; 5-3-
VII.4.3
(acc.pl.)
(pres.ind.act.sg.
yamas
1.
5-3-
8.3.
(prcs.jopl.
pass.gen.sg.)
general.
nan
IV.10.3.
isyantas
24.1.
-tlusam(gen.pl.)VIII.6.5.
avicesa a. ivithoict diffcr-
sena
VI.7.1.
-isyami (fut.ind.act.sg.)
11.4,5,6,7,8,9.
1.5;
eticCy
(unaug.aor.ind.act.
sg-)
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
2.2.
2.9.
(prcs.ind.act.sg.)
III. 17. 2.
nanti
III. 6.
I.
and
7.1
S.I
9.1
lO.I.
hunger
thirst.
-se (acc.du.)
(pres.ind.act.pl.) agani
1
f.
aganayapipasa
IV.10.3.
nati
f.(m.)
VI,8.3,
thunderbolt^
Jlash of lightning.
-nis
(nom,sg ,)
V,5,i,
my at
ana (imv.act.sg.)
10.3.
IV.
VI.7.3.
a9a(perf.ind.act.sg.) VI.
7.2,4.
VIII.
12.2,
I.
-ram
(acc,sg,m,)
VIII,
12,1,
rasya
12. 1.
(gen.sg.)
VIII.
agrnvant
-rani (nom.pl.n.)
J
VI 11.
\/i as
agvapati m.nm.pr.
-lis
2,2.
V.11.4.
(nom.sg.)
a^man
ma (nom.sg.) 1.2.8.
manam (acc.sg.)
1.2.
indcl., see
\/dha.
be
agruta
(acc.sg. n.)
J/ot
a.
7/1/-
heard,
ee)/th.~\
y/\ as be.
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
mi
ta
(nom-sg.)
a^va m. horse.
-vas (nom.sg-.)
-vas (nom.pl.)
m.
by
chariot
feniale
mules.
-thas (nom.sg.)
4.
IV. 2. 2,
V.13.2.
IV. 2. 1,3.
m.
holy fg -tree.
agvattha
VIII.
-thas (nom.sg.)
-tham
(acc.sg.)
34.5,9,15.
IV.4.1,3,4
(3t.); 10.3;
ii.i(2t.);
]2.l(2t.);
I3.l(2t.).
1.3
-i
15.4.
VIII. II. 1, 2.
(pres.ind.sg.)
1.5.2,4.
III.i7.6(3t.).
IV.4.2
16.1
17. 1.
VI. I.
12.3
15-3;
a^vanaya m. horsc-leadcr.
-3as (nom.sg.) VI.8.3,5.
I.ii.
V.i.6(2t.),i3(3t.),i4
VI.9.
11.5,7.
(2t.);
VII.
2(2t.); IO.l(2t.).
3.1.
VII.6. i
18.1.
drawn
II.21.4;
III. 14.4.
^"II.9.I.
V III.
(pres.ind.sg.)
I.
aqrotr
agvatariratha
[astadaga
1-2.5.
kftoivn.
-tam
syllables.
ra
heard.
a.
forty-eight
havij/g
7iot to
acravaniya grdv.
-yam
111,16.5.
astacatvaringadaksara
7,8.
a^rad
ty-eight.
-^at (nom.)
16.3.
VII. 15.2
(6t.),3(6t.),4.
-ti
(pres.ind.sg.)
II. 21.
v/2 as
iS
ni.14.4.
3-
2.2(2t.);
(2t.);
5.2,3
4.3(21.);
(2t.);
asahasra
(2t.);
6.2(2t.);
7.2
(2t.);
S.2(2t.);
9.2
10.2.
(2t.)
(2t.)
13.2
i2.2(2t.);
(2t.);
1.2
tasya
(pass.ppl.gen.sg.)
I.S.
(pres.ind.pl.)
asani (pres.subj.sg.)
once., often.
V.io.S.
2.6.
syam
(pres.opt.sg.)
2.3 (2t.).
(pres.opt.sg.)
1.2.
24.1.
10.3.
III. 14.4.
V.
7.3(2t.); S.4,6.
asant
(pres.opt.jDl.)
III.
(nom.sg.n.)
VI. 2. 1.
19.1.
satas
VI. 2.
(abl.sg.)
VI. asambadha
a.
n7tconJi77cd.,
large.
2.4.
astu (imv.sg.)
VII.15.2.
sant pres.ppl.,
IV. 2. 3.
which
(impf.ind.sg.)
19.1(2!.).
a.
-sat
5.2.
syama
(acc.sg.n.)
not existing.
3.
8,9, io(2t.),ii;
asft
zvithotit
a.
agreement^ separate.
8.3.
smas
II.
VI. 13.
abiiiprasya grd.
II.i.i.
VIII.i.3(2t.); 12.1.
svas (pres.ind.du.) VIII. asaihvidana
syat
hurl.
tJiro%i\
sec.
III.
VI.2.l(2t.),
dhan
(acc.pl.)
asambheda m.
A^II.12.
7ton-u?iion^
separation.
day a (dat.sg.
as
inf.)
VIII.4.1.
asa (perf.ind.sg.)
I.
VI.i.i.
IV. i. asahasra
less
n.
non-tJto/isand^
than a thousand.
asadhu
-rcna (instr.sg.) IV. 4. 5.
not good^ not
a.
asrama
ainusmat (abl.sg.)
8
asadhu
ll.i.i,
(nom.-acc.sq;.n.)
-dhuna
asta
a. niiplcasant^ sad.
-khaiii (acc.sg.n.) VII.
22.1.
IV. I
home
n. steady
-tani
1.2
I.9.4
13.2
V.1.3. VIII.6.2
13.2.
non-Saman.
n.
I.7.5
(loc.sg.)
(2t.).
1.3.
asaman
2,2.
(2t.).
II.
(instr.sg.)
VI.9.2.
8.5,7.
amusmin
7.1.
1.6.
;
(gcn.sg.)
(2t.);
VII.2.i(2t.);
3(2t.).
VIII.6.2
7.7.
amusya
right.
(of sun)
I
(nom.-acc.sg.)
II. 14.1.
9.1.
III.6.4:
7.4(2t.);8.4(2t.); 9.4
(2t.)
io.4(2t.)
ii.i
IV.3.i(2t.).
1.2.2,3,4,5,6,7.
-ran (acc.pl.)
ranam
7-^
VIII.S.4. asthi
VIII.
(gcn.pl.)
1.3.1,2
(nom.sg. ni.)
5.1
;4.
10.6.
8.5;
III.i.i
II. 10.5.
V.3.3
lo.S.
19.3.
VIII.
6.1.
amum
-nas
(acc.sg.m.)
;
II. 19. 1.
VI.
(nom.sg.m.)
7.1;
VIII.6.2(2t.)
3.
11.9.1,8.
10.7.
VII.3.1;
1.
(instr.sg.)
III.i5.3(i5t.).
14.1.
8.4,5.
I-7-7-
VI.
i.i.
asmadvidya
f.
k)ioxvledgc
ourselves.
of
-(nom.sg.)
2(2t.)
amiina
bone.
-(nom.sg.)
_yc,
der^ that.
(2t.);
n.
II. 9. 7.
5-3-
S.5.
asau dcm.pron.
sun),
-yat (abl.sg.)
VIII.S.4.
asmarant
a.
IV. 14. 1.
not remember-
ing., tJiougJttlcss.
v/ah aham
20
y/ah speak.
attha
-(nom.sg.)
I V.I.
3,5.
1.8.
IV. 1.8;
I.
16.7.
i2.i.(2t.);
(perf.ind.act.pl.)
VII.
4.5.
5.
3;
1.
aha
certahtly.
.
nence of t lie
16.2;
V.i.6.
V.4.1;
10. 1.
VIII.3.2(2t.),3(2t.),5
;
IV. 15.5.
aham
(acc.pl.)
ipcrs.pron,
II.9.1
VI. 15. 1
17.2,
VIII.6.4(2t.).
11.4,6,8
1.
10.
III.
12.3.
IV.2.4,5; 4.4;
16.7.
7.
VI. 7. 1,2.
/.
11.3;
I--3;
13-152,3;
14.3;
15-3;
i6-3-
8.7;
9.4;
VII. 1. 1,
3-
(instr.sg.)
7,9(2t.).
me
V.io.i.
hani
maya
4.2.
(abl.sg.)
14.2. V.2.6;3.4,5(2t.),
(2t.)
(end. acc.sg.)
of the Ego.
-9as (nom.sg.) VII.25.1,
-hnas
6.
25.i(7t.). VIII.
(2t.).
ahanikarade9a m. doctrine
15.5.
(2t.).
(acc.sg.)
(^2t.).
ma
(loc.sg.)
2(2t.); i4.i(3t.).
free m i
Ego^ self-
conceit.
yasi
mam
of coiirse^
VIII. 11.2.
assev.pcl.
10.
VII. 15.2.
ahamgrey as n
VI.3.2;
24.2
|-prati reply.
sg.)
2.6; 3.5
(2t.); 11.3,5.
1.3.
pratyaha
(2t.),i4.(2t.);
9. 2 (2t.)
VIII.6.4;
(2t.); 15.2.
8.5;
VI.2.1;
IV.3.7.
i3.i(2t.);
V.i.6(2t.),i3
14.3.
III.
II.i.3(3t.),3(3t.).
I7-5-
4.i,2(4t.),4
10.5; n.i(2t.);
(6t.);
VIII.6.5.
ahus
1.5.2,4; 8.7,
(pcrf.iiKl.act.s<^.)
I.ii.5,
IV.i.4,6.
(encl.dat.-gen.sg.)
io.2,3(2t.),4; 11.3.
I.
II.
24-5'95H- Ili-H-3(2t.),
ahar
4;
akaca
IV. 2. 2
16.2,4,6.
12
--;
1-3.5;
"^^11
8.1,3.
3--;
4-3
mat
mama
1.5.2,4
(gen.sg.)
avam (nom.du.)
VIII.
vayam
(nom.pl.)
1.8.5,7.
III.
11.24.^,8,12,13.
I^'^-3-7; 1 1-2;
I7-7'
12.2 ; 13.2.
V.2.7.
(end. ace.
dat.
gen.
6;
a-
II. 1.4.
19.4.
VII. 2. 1
I.
VIII.
(nom.sg.m.)
ahinsa
noii
f.
injtiring^
-(nom.sg.)
III. 1 7.4.
8.1,3.
san
harmlessness.
1.3.
nas
not Jiarining,
a.
1.
10,1
V.I. 7,
VI.4.5.
Jiarmlcss.
V. 1.8,9,
(abLsg.)
1.1,6.
3,5-
ahinsant
vni.8.i.
14.2.
II.I.3(2t.).
10.4.
VI.i.7(2t.);3.4
1.5.
12. 2.
IV.5.1
V.2.i,2;3.6
4.7; 7.4;
1.
pi.)
3; 14.3.
21
III. 13
V.2.i(2t.)
10
7.1 ; 8.1
;
VIII.8.i(2t.).
II.8.1.
the heart.
ahoratra
n.
-re (acc.du.)
VIII.4.1.
-gas (nom.sg.)
III.11.7;
1.9.1(31.).
12.7,8(2t.),
IV.
9; 13.5; 18.1.
13. 1. V.6.1
23.2(2!.).
;
VII.4.2
12.
26.1.
VIII.i.i,2,3(2t.);
14.
I.
-9am
15.
1.9.1.
(acc.sg.)
IV.io.
1.
!^.
V. 10.4,5;
VII. 2.
7.1
22
akagavant
II.
acaryavant
I3,l(3t.),3(2t.).
VIL
(instr.sg.)
12. 1.
-9at (abl.sg.)
10.4,5; I2.2(2t.).
12.2.
-96
tJie
II. 24.
-yasya (gen.sg.)
descended
a.
angirasa
VII.
(gen.sg.)
the Agn'idhra ; m.
fre therein.
VII.
VIII. 12. 2.
13. 1.
fasya
V.
I.9.I.
1.2. 14.
being within
a.
agnidhnya
VIII.I2.4.
-gena
-ta (nom.sg.)
from
Angirasj
m.
nm.pr.
V.23.2.
(loc.sg.)
-sas (nom.sg.)
acarana
VII.i2.i(6t.).
a.
III. 17.6.
approach^ con-
n.
cart.
possessinj^
akaQavant
duct/
-ne (loc.sg.) VIII. 1 2.3.
free spacc^ spacious.
VII. 12. acarya m. teacher.
vatas (acc.pl.)
2.
-yas (nom.sg.)
akagatman
iviih atmos-
a.
pJicrc as self.
ma
-yam
III.
(nom.sg.m.)
14.2.
akitapataih g a p i p i 1 a k a
adv.
i^as
as
far
together with
bitttc-flies^
i.e.)
ivoriiis^
and
ants.
IV.9.1
VII.15.1.
i4.i(3t.).
(acc.sg.)
VII. 15.
2.
yat
(abl.sg.)
acaryakula
IV.9.3.
teacher'' s
n.
fatnily or abode.
-lam (acc.sg.)
IV.5.1
9.1.
-lat
(So BR., Bo. but it is
(abl.sg.) Vni.15.1.
better
to
sepa- acaryakulavasin a. dzvcllperhaps
;
a and kita
these and Wli.
into
see
Gr.
a.
hard.
nas
(nom.sg.m.)
nam
(acc.sg.m.)
xi'ith
teacher^s
family.
-sT (nom.sg.m.)
acaryajaya
I253.c,d.)
akhana
i)ig
f.
II. 23. 2.
teachcr\s
wife.
1. 2.8.
1.2.7,8.
acaryahan
VI.
-van (nom.sg.m.)
acaryahan m. slayer of a
teacher^ >i/ao^isfr/ciih'.
13.1.
\'II.i5.
(noni.sg-.)
-ma (nom.sg.)
f.
race, combat.
-jcs (gen.sg.)
n.
ajya
melted bn 1 1 c r^
1^-
hoc
V.2.4,
nm.
n.
dam
I.io.
i.
c<ro-.
(nom.sg.)
III. 19.
n.
eg-g. shell.
from
iipon.,
atmakrlda
tJiis^
tJiere-
then.
III. 17.7.
a. playing ivith
or delighting in
-das (nom.sg.m.)
VII.
as
character ^ self;
refl.pron.
thyself
the
myself.,
himself\ etc.'
self
par
excel-
lo-
I2.l(2t.),
l6.l(2t.),2;
VI.16.1
VIII.I.6
(2t.),2(2t.).
5.1,2; 7.1,2(2t.),
8.i(2t.),4(3t.);
11. 1,
mane (dat.sg.)
-manas (gen.sg.)
/.2
S.I
II. 22. 2.
11''*
1'22'
16.2
VI. 3.
(instr.sg.)
2,3;
2'
II.
I2.6(2t.).
-mana
5.2
14.1
I7.l(2t.),
iS.i(2t.).
3;
3.
i5.i(2t.),2;
(2t.),2;
1.
22.5(2!.).
i3.i(2t.),2;
(2t.);
self.
5-3; 7-
(acc.sg.)
V.I 1.2,4,6;
2;
5.
VIII. I.
i2.4(3t.),5;
II. 9.4;
1,2;
so7il;
VII.3.1
4. 1.
12.
11.3;
1,34; ^34(2t.);
II. I
15.
4-3
25.2(71.).
manam
III. 19.1.
-le (nom.du.)
andaja a. egg-bom.
at adv.
I.I
VI. S.
1.
10.3;
i;
I.
andakapala
V.I
14.1
17.
94;
3; 16.3.
;
5; 3-34; 4-1
pr.
-kyfi (iiistr.sg.)
anda
16.1
1.7.2(21.);
15.1.
13.
12,
5(4t-)f.
7;
1.3.5.
-yasya (gen.sg.)
atiki
of the
Ill.i4.3(2t.),4.
IV. 3. 7
12.
aji
23
universe.
14.2.
-ha
atman
i;:;.2.
12...
V.12.
TC''
V III.
atmamithuna
24
mani
V.24.4. atharvana
(loc.sg.)
VIII. 15.1.
manas
II.22.
(nom.pl.)
3(3t-)-
masu
V.18.1
(loc.pl.)
24.2.
atmamithuna
a.
having
nas
VII.
(nom.sg.m.)
25.2.
atmarati
a.
fndino-
satis-
factiojt in sef.
a.
knoxving sef
vit (nom.sg.)
VII. 1. 3
(2t.).
atmavidya
knowledge
f.
self ox of
iJie
sit-
pi'eme spirit.
IV. 1 4. 1.
-(nom.sg.)
atmasammita
71
a.
sclf-meas-
red.
atmade^a m. doctrine of
the soul or self
gas (nom.sg.)
atmananda
a.
in self.
-das ('lom
25.?.
VI 1. 2 5.2.
finding
sg.m
aditya
bliss
A'lT.
a.
belonging
to
adityajaya- v/ap
25
VLi.4,6.
6.5.
-yena
1S.5.
-yat (abl.sg.)
I V.I
5.5; 17.2.
2.
-yasya (gcn.sg.)
II. 10.6.
'
--3
'
1.6.6.
II.
I^".II.I.
V.
(nom.pl.)
III.S.i
-yebhyas
(dat.pl.)
(gen.jil.)
24.
16.6.
VII.
VIIL1.4;
12.6.
payatas (pres.ind.act.du.
(-pra-
1. 1. 6.
arrive
prapnnvanti
act.pl.)
pa
SlDl.
at.,
zuin.
(pres.ind.
VII.6.1.
IV.9.1.
-ptaya (pass.pj^l.dat.sg.)
V.3.6.
-vani (nom.sg.)
a.
VI.4.2.
sharing
in
adi.
-jlni (nom.pl. n.)
tam
10.2; 26.2.
cans.)
1 1.
II. 10.6.
-yat (abl.sg.)
adityatva n. quality of the
n.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
7.1,2,3; 8.4;
II.
the sun.
adista
pnoti
adibhajin
10.4.
i6.5(2t.),6.
111.8.3,4;
9.4;
1.7.7,8. 11.10.5,6.
24.14.
I.
III.6.4;
(acc.sg.)
7.4; 8.4;
V.2.6.
VIII.6.2.
19.2.
-yanam
premacy.
VIII.6.2.
yas
VI. 1. 3.
(acc.sg.)
-yam
1.6.5,6.
14.1,2.
V.io.
111,1.4
(loc.sg.)
-9am
VIII.6.2.
VI.4.2.
ye
III.
(insti'.sg.)
II. 9.4.
instruction.
(nom.sg.)
ili.iS
-ptas (pass.ppl.noni.pl.)
IV.5.1.
-ptebhyas (pass.ppl.dat.
V.I 1.5.
pi.)
-pya grd.
-payati
Cans.)
VI.4.7
8.6.
])rcs.ind.act.sg.
X V
.y.;-;.
36
apayitr
paya
(imv.
arjava
cicL.s<^.caus.)
IV.5.1.
f-abliipra attain to.
abhiprapnuvanti
ind.act.pl.)
(pres.
V.10.3.
sg.)
(pres.ind.acl.
1.
t//c
(accsg.)
V.io.i.
(abl.sg.)
IV. 15. 5.
IV. 15.5.
long
///"c,
13.2;
II.
|.
I'3'5'
life.
12.2;
1.2;
T'7''*
1.2
IV.
III.16.6.
20.2.
1
V.IO.I.
yas
IV. 8.
st retch i no-,
n.
-(acc.sg.)
"t
(moon).
sam
a.
n.
ayus
1.7.
half-month of crescent
apomaya
34(3t-)-vatas (acc.pl.)
nam (nom.sg. )
apuryamanapaksa m.
-sat
bcndino'.
[-pta pass.ppl.]
apayitr m. obtaina-.
-ta (nom.sg-.)
s?tpport or abode.
ayamana
1.4.4.
V.3.5.
A'I.24.2.
having a
a.
ayatanavant
|-sam "iVin^Jinlsk.
samapnoti
nay a (dat.sg.)
nani (acc.pl.)
12.2
13.2.
-usas (abl.sg.)
II. 24. 6,
10,15.
(nom.sg.m.)
VI. 5.
of the forest,
iv lid animal.
a.
xvild;
m.
amiksa
f.
7.1,6.
VI.8.1.
curds.
-say a (instr.sg.)
VIII.
'8.5.
ayatana
n.
nam
sanctuary.
/"nom.-acc.sg.)
i-5(3t-); i-i4(2t.>
8.2(2t.).
-nim
(acc.sg.)
V.17.1.
Aruni ; m.nm.pr.
-yas
(nom.sg.)
V.3.I.
VI. I.I.
VI. arjava
-vam
n.
rectitude.
artvijya s/as
artvijya n. office or duty of a^ihsamrddhi
the sacrijicitig^ fricsf.
prayer,
1.
-yais (instr.pl.)
f.
success iu
-<lhis (nom.sg.)
10.6;
I-3-S.
11.2,3.
arseya a.
Rishi. see
yam
rsi.
14.1.
(nom.sg.n.)
a^vatara^vi m.nm.pr.
I'3'9-
-vis (nom.sg.)
^'.II.I.
ava- pron.st.ipcrs., see
vim
V.16.1.
aham.
(acc.sg.)
avarta m. tumiiig^ zcind- \^as sit^ seat oneself; re\
'i
tam
main^
->
IV. 15.6.
(acc.sg.)
avartin
tlni
a.
rct7irn{ng.
V.io.S.
(nom.pl.n.)
m.
avasatha
dzvelling-
place, inn.
-than
IV.i.i.
avirbhavatirobhava m. ap-
and
disap-
3.53.
f.
(nom.du.) VII.26.1.
^'^.I4.I,2;
26.1.
9am
(acc.sg.)
sam
I.
(vbl.f. acc.sg.)
lO.I
I.
upasse (pres.ind.mid.sg.)
V.i2.i(2t.)
i3.i(2t.);
i4.i(2t.);
(instr.sg.)
VII.
(pres.ind.mid.sg.)
1.1.7,8;
2,4.
(abl.-gen.sg.)
i4-2(3t-);
I(2t.).
ste
14.2.
9ayas
Vlll.6.4.
pi.)
11.22.2.
VII. 14. 1, 2.
9aya
VII. 1 3. 1.
sinas
IV. 2. 2.
hope.
-(nom.sg.)
(pres.ind.mid.sg.)
IV.2.4.
-siran (pres.opt.mid.pl.)
pearance.
van
dxvell.
(pres.ppl.mid.nom.
(acc.pl.)
pearance
sse
2.14;
3.7;
VII.
I5-I-
9.8
19.4.
io.6(2t.).
Ill
IV.5.3(2t.); 6
4(2t.);
7.4(2t.);
(2t.);
ii.2(2t.);
8.4
12.2
28
ahrada
asura
V.I2. asura
(2t.); I3.2(2t.).
13
16.2
.2
17.2
'>
18.
C T
VII.
1.
belonging io the
Asuras^ demonic.
-ras (nom.sg.m.) VIII.
9.2(21.)
12.2
ii.2(2t.);
(2t.);
13.2;
(2t.);
14.2
(pres.incl.niicl.pl.)
IV.3.7.
sate (pres.incl.micl.pl.)
V. 10.1,3;
24.5(21.).
VIII.12.6.
sita
I
4.1
I
3-152,3,5,6,8; 4.
II.2.1 ; 3.1 ;
5.3.
5.1
9.1
6.1
10.
7.1
2; 6.1; 7.1
lo.i
;
sam
I.I
4.2;
8.1
12.
5.
9.1
13.
V.1S.2.
1.2.
(vbl.f.acc.sg.)
2,34:5A75lO,lI,I2.
f-paryupa
s/i aro/end,
worship.
paryupasate
mid. pi.)
1.2.
-yfit (abl.sg.)
ahavaniya
(a.
2.
w. agni
=)
m. oblation-Jire
-yas (nom.sg.)
V.I 8.2.
IV. 1 3.1.
-yasya (gen.sg.)
II.24.
II.
-dhau
ahuti
-tes
oblation., offerijtg.
(pres.ind.
\\.
V.i9.r.
(acc.sg.)
V.4.
(abl. -gen.sg.)
;
-tau
5.2
6.2
(loc.sg.)
7.2
8.2.
V.3.3;
9.1.
ahrada m.
of thunder.,
V.24.5.
VII. 26. 2.
(loc.sg.)
f.
tim
2
14.1.
15.X.
asya
food.
(imv.mid.sg.) VII.
14.
i8.i(2t.).
ssva
8.
21.4.
111.13.1,2,3,4,5,8;
I
10.8.
1.
n. montJi.
ficial
(pres.opt.mid.sg.)
i-i-i
a cert, recitation^.
-ve (loc.sg.)
yam (nom.sg.)
(2t.).
smahe
8.5.
10.2
a.
thuftder-
clap.
-das (nom.pl.)
VII. 11,
Vi
idam.
come/ attain to,
i- pron.st,3pers., sec
\/i,
ay
'o,
spring from/
be en-
1.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
^
11. II, -
1,3.
"^
17.2
TOOJ--.-
10
19.2
20.
111.16.2,4,6;
17.2,3. IV.3.i(2t.);
V.
^'m-3-3'5;
^^'
yanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
V.io.S.
9.1.
I.
seeWh.RVF.
ctii
s.v.v/i)
-Tyiya
(imv.act.sg.)
I.11.3.
prcs.opt.mid.sg.,
29. a
inadequate)
ihi
and 616
VII. 3.1.
VII.
(imv.act.sg.)
I.I.
-iyanas
pres.ppl.mid.
VIII. 1 5. 1.
VI.
1.2. VIII.
-itya grd.
nom.sg.)
Y'AWW foil0%V.
anuyanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
V.14.1.
into.
apyeti
pres.ind.act.sg.)
IV.3.i(3t.),3.
II.14.1.
eta (nm.ag.nom.sg'.)
24-5'9'i5-
II.
III.6.4;
8.4(2t.);
(2t.); io.4(2t.);
7.
-piyanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
IV. 3. 2. VI.io.i.
9.4
-pitas (pass.ppl.nom.sg.)
1.4.
itas(pass.ppl.nom.sg.) V.
9.2.
adhyemi(pres.ind.act.sg.)
V.
VIII.ii.
1,2.
come ov go
ayanti
to, befall.
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
V.14.1.
ehi (imv.act.sg.)
VII.I.2(2t.).
-esi (pres.ind.act.sg.)
VI.8.i(2t.).
f-
1.6.
1.
yan (pres.ppl.act.nom.sg.)
inadequate)
14.
15.1.
12.
4(2t.);
(pres.ind.mid.sg.,
VII.3.
(pres.ind.mid.sg.,
Wh.Gr.lnadcquate,but
1. 2.
adhite
II.
ay ate
11.2,4.
Wh.Gr.
2; 23.2,
10.1,3.
J-
1S.2
5.
V.
-eti (pres.ind.act.sg.)
Wh.Gr.
Scarred in.
eti
29
ay an
sg.)
V.1.12.
(pres.ppl.act.noni.
VI II. 6.6.
x/i
30
eyaya
1.
2.
perf.incl.act.sg.)
10.7.
V. 3. 1,4,6. VI. I.
VIII.9.2; 10.3;
-diyaya (perf.ind.act.sg.)
III.11.2.
deta
1.2.
-J
go for til.
V.3.6.
paryetya
10,
V.i.8,(;,
grd.
1.
sametya grd.
<S
oneself
to,
go
a grd.
(-
(pres.opt.act.sg.)
VI. 1.2.
-etya grd.
about, at-
"^'i-^lk
hP^^'i
tain.
paryeti (pres.ind.act.sg.)
to to-
VIII.12.3.
-yeta
nm.ag.nom.sg.)
III.6.4
ether
abhisamety
upasamfi
to.
V.ii.i.
ether
near, devote
go
|-upa
IV.4.3.
pratyeyaya (pcrf.iiid.act.
iv. 1.7,8; 3.7.
sg.)
f-sama gather^ assem-
(T
II-I4-IIII.i i.i.
-ditya grd.
upeyam
[-pratya return.
I.I.
-ditas (pass.ppl.noni.sg.)
1.6.7.
10.4
9.4(2t.);
1
8.4
7.4(2t.);
(2t.);
(2t.)
lulcy ay a (perf.incl.act.sg.)
nm.ag.nom.sg.
III.6.4;
V.
come
7.4
8.4
9.4
10.4.
to-
hP''^
go forth,
depart,
die.
tvith.
praiti (pres.ind.act.sg.)
4.2.
II.
VIII. 3. 1,
\-
udeti (pres.ind.act.sg.)
6.7.
III.6.3;
3; 9-3;
^0-3;
7.3;
I.
8.
II-3-
-dyanti (prcs.ind.act.pl.)
III.6.2 ; 7.2 ; 8.2 ; 9.2 ;
V.3.2.
-rayatas
gen.sg.)
-resyami
pres.ppl.act.
VI.8.6.
(fut.ind.act.sg.)
IIT.16.7.
10.2.
-dyan (prcs.ppl.act.nom.
sg.)
-rayanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
I-3-K-t-)-
II. 14.1.
-retam
m.)
(pass.ppl.acc.sg.
V.9.2.
itara
tasya
(pass.ppl.gcu.s<^.)
VIII.8.5.
tas
(pass.ppl.nom.pl.)
viyaya (pcrf.ind.act.sg.)
conic
j-sam
meet.
togctJicr^
IV. 1.4,6.
j-abhisam
quota-
or
book)
often
superfluous or loosely
used, esp. in
I.i.i(
2t.
ChU.
),4,5,6,8,9( 3t.),
6(2t.),7,S;
3.2(2t.),
4.i(2t.),4;
5;
6.7,8;
7.9;
S.I
(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.),4(8t.),
codic togeth-
to.
5(5t.),6(2t.),7(7t.),8
(4t.); 9.i(2t.),4(3t.);
abhisameti (pres.ind.act.
I V.I. 4,6.
sg.)
10,11;
sariiyanti
4(2t.),5(2t.),6(2t.),7
(pres.ind.act.
IV.I5.2(3t.).
j-upasam come
pi.)
er
togeth-
(pres.opt.
-ran
1.
(acc.pl.m.)
2.9.
V.I. 12.
loxv,
1.
12.
-.3.5-
II.i.i(3t.),2(4t.),3(4t.),4;
2.i;7.2;S.i(3t.),2(4t.);
3(2t.),4;
19.2;
21.4;
22.1,2(2t.),3,4(2t.),5
(3t-);
23.1,3;
24.2,4,
6,8,10,12,13,15.
world^
ii.i(2t.),3(4t.),
9.2,7,8; IO.l(2t.),2(2t.),
1.12.3.
act.pl.)
io-2,3(3t-)'4(3t-)A7'9.
(^2t.),S(2t.),9(3t.);
upasamiyata
II. 10. 5.
III. II. 2;
45
5'7'S;
12.6;
13.1,2,3,
i4-i4(-t.);
i5.4,5(2t.),6(2t.),7(2t.);
l6.2(2t.),4(2t.),6(2t.),
9.2.
7; i7-4>5A7(2t.); iS.
VIII.3.1
5.3.
adv. ^<3, thzcs/ used in
IV.i.i,2,3(2t.),4,5(2t.),6,
111.14.1,4. V.3.2
;
iti
direct
making
5.l(2t.),2(2t.),3,4(3t.),
samyanti(pres.ind,act.pl.)
er
31
10; 2.1,9,14;
IV.9.3(2t.).
iti
tion
Vni.3.2.
|-vi
i(3t.),2(2t.);
19.1,1.
iti
2.2,3,4,
7(2t.),S(3t.);
i(2t.),2,3(4t.),5(3t.),7
5;3--A7(-t.);4-i>-.3.
(3t.);
4(3t-)'5(3t-);
10-152,3(31.); 11.2,3
5-1 (-t.).
9.2(2t.),4(3t.);
2(2t.),3(2t.)
6.1,3(2t.),
(4t.);
3(2t.),4(2t.)
7.i,3(2t.),
i3.i(2t.),2(iot.),3(3t.);
3(2t.),4(2t.);
8.1,2
(2t.),3(2t.),4(2t.);
10.2,3
i(2t.),2(2t.),3;
(2t.),4.5(3t-)
9.
ii-i(2t.);
13.1(21.);
i2.i(2t.);
i2.i(iot.),3(3t.);
15.1,3
i4.2(2t.),3(3t.);
(3t-);
16.1,3(31.).
VII.i.i(2t.),3(2l.),4,5
(51.);
3.1
2.1,2(51.);
(5l.),2(5l.)
4.2,3(61.)
6.1,2
i4.i(2t.),2(5t.),3(3t.);
5.2(2l.),3(6l.);
i5.i(2t.),2,6;
(51.);
7.1,2(61.);
8.1,2
(5t-);
9-i'2(6t.);
lo.i
17.3(31.),
V.i.6,7(2t.),8(2t.),9(2t.),
(3l.),2(6l.)
10(2t.),Il(2t.), 12,13
2(61.);
(2t.),i4(3t.),i5(2t.);
1,2(51.);
11.1(31.),
13.
12.1,2(61.);
14.1,2(61.);
1
6.
2.i(?t.),2(2t.),3,4,5(4t.),
i5-2,3(6t.),4(2t.)
6,7(4t.),8,9(2t.);
3.1
(31.);
(2t.),2(6t.),3(4t.),4(2t),
(21.);
19.1(21.);
9.1
(21.);
21.1(21.);
22.1
(31.);
23.1(21.);
24.1
5(2t.),6(2t.),7(2t.)
10.1,3,3,6,8,9,10
(2t.);
(2t.); 11.1,2,3,4,5,6,7;
I3.I
12.l(2t.),.2(2t.);
(3t.),3(2t.);
I4.l(2t.),2
I5.i(3t.),3(2t.);
(2t.);
(2t.),2(2t.)
21. 1 ; 22.1
I ;
;
17.
20.
23.1.
VLi.i,3,4(2t.),5,6(2t.),7
2.2,3(2t.),4;
(2t.);
3.1,
2,3,4 ;4-i52,3,4,5,6(6t.),
7(3t-)
(3t-);
5-4(3t-)
6.5
7-i'2(3t.),456; 8.
17.1(21.);
(2l.),3(4l.);
18.1
20.1
25.1(21.),
2; 26.1,2(31.).
VIII.i.2,3,4;
3.3,4(31.),
5; 5.l(2l.),2(2t.),3(2l.);
6.1,4,5;
7-i52,3(3i.),4
8.i(3i.),2(2i.),3
(41.);
(3l.),4(2l.),5(2t.)
(2{.),3(2l.)
9.1,2
IO.l(2t.),2,
1.1(41.), 2
(3t-)'3(2t.);
12.4(31.),
saCsQi
5,6.
Inserled
by Bo. against
itihasapurana
or
manuscnpts
tors
IV.3.S(3t.);
VI. 3. 1
io(3t.).
1.3
13.2
VII.4.3;
(last).
15.
V.io.S(3ad),
6(3t.).
(3nd)
5.3
i6.i(ist)
manuscripts
:
edi-
4; 13.4.
^~-
III.II.6(3t.).
V.
1^-3-3; 9-3(2t.)3.i,9(3t.)
19.3
30.3
TOO
21.
3.3;
VI.
4.3;
7.6
13.2; 16.
(2t.);
[2.3;
3(2t.)
VIII. 1. 1
13.
13. 1.
III.I3.7,8(3t.),
V.I
16.1.
3;
3-3;
74(2t.);
3.1
2(2t.); 12.3.
idam (nom.-acc.sg.n.)
I.
III.II.5; 12.l(3t.),2,3,
i3.7(2t.);
14.
i5.i,4(2t.); 16.
IV.
14.3;
3.7,8(2t.);
i6.i(2t.). V.2.i,6(2t.);
24.1.
VI. 1.3;
2.l(2t.),
'->
*>
3;
7-Ith?is.
9-1
(2t.),2(2t.); II.l(2t.),
2.4;
(M.M.).
1.3,4.
VIII.i.
VII.5.3(3t.).
1,2,3,4,5,6; 19.1.
(nom.-acc.sg'.) III.
VII.5.3.
IV.3.3(3t.),4
9(3t.).
ajicient
VII.i.3,4;
1.3.
ayam (nom.sg.m.)
Itihasa
traditions
tliis
iprthivi
n.
ittham adv.
noiv^
the
4.1,3.
here^
isarvam
ziniversc; f.
this earth.
1,2,4;
itihasapurana
nam
adv.
as
thns ;
4(2t.),7;
(2t.).
legend;
contr.w.asau
(3t.)
,7;
24.i(ist),
33
here
III.
II. 31.3.
I.5.2(ist).
iS.i.
cdi-
idam
V.io.i.
H-3;
15-3;
VII.25.i(2t.),2
VIII. 1. 1, 2,4;
16.'
26.1
8.1, O
10.1,3; i3.i,3,4(3t.).
iyam (nom.sg.f.)
3
I; 1.9
idam
34
6.1.
IILi2.2(3t.),3
19.2.
IV. 2. 4.
VI. 3. 2, 3;
V.3.7.
IO.l(2t.).
VII.io.i.
imam
2
1.
(acc.sg.m.)
3. 2.
VIII.6.2(3t.)
anena
10.2
13.2;
12.
14.2(31.).
354'5A7A9:io;
3.1,2
10.1,2
9.1,2;
(2t.);
(ace. sg-.f.)
1.6.
(instr.sf^.)
1.2.
III.16.7.
IV.2.S.
7.8.
VI.3.2,3.
asyas
1
VIII.3.5.'
10.3; 13.4.
13.7,8; 14.1.
IV.5.3;
6.4; 7.4; 8.4; 10.3; II.
II.2.3; 3.
2; 12.2;
IV.2.5;
V.I. 4.
3.7; 10.2,4,5.
VI.16.1.
V.i.3;2.3.
ii.3(2t.),6.
1,3,4.
I.8.7
II-6.2;
2,34^5^73;
(2t.)4:5;
9.
7.2; 9.
15.1,5.
VII.15.1.
9-i(2t.),2
(21.); 12.3.
asyam
4; 6.4,5; 12.3.
asya (gcn.sg.)
13.2;
VIII.I.l(2t.),2(2t.),3
VIII. 3.
(abl.sg-.)
IV.
(gcn.sg.f.)
7.8.
asmat
11.2
VIII.i.3,5(2t.); 2.1,2,
8.4.
imam
9.2
2;
IV. 15.6.
V.I 1.2,4,6;
18. 1.
VII. 3.1; 7.1;
14.1,
3.
III.
(loc.sg.f.)
2.2.
10.6. III.
8.3.
_
(3t.);
13.1,2,3,4,5,6;
14.5-
12.2;
16.3,5.
1^.3.7,8; it.3;
13.2; 14.1:
V.I 2.2; 13.2;
VI.7.6;
3.6;
imc (nom.pl.m.)
II. 21.
10.2,7.
12.3,4.
V. 10.1,3
I-7-6
III.
;
1.
3-I-
11.5,7,9.
IV. 2. 2.
V.3.4;
vni.ii.i,2.
I.
II-9-2.
10.8.
\/idh
imas ( nom.-acc.pl. f.)
lY
-v/is
35
-re (loc.sg.)
II. 33.
5.
^'-i-S'-^Svi
indradyumna m. nm.pr.
2-5; 4-5-uas (nom.sg.)
V.ii.
4.7; S..|,6(3t.); 9.2;
I.
13,1.
VII. 10.
10.1,2
;
-nam
VIII.3.2.
l(2t.).
1.
10.4.
I.4.3
^0
(dat.-abl.pl.)
I.
III-
+"'
J"*"
'
(acc.sg. m.)
VIII. ibhyagrama
(abl.pl.f.)
O'"
'
a.
ibhya
6.3.
m.
10.3.
nm.pr.
i^Richvillc^.
esam
1. 1.3.
(gen.pl.)
IV.17.8.
V.3.5.
(g-en.pl.f.)
(loc.sg.)
1. 10. 1,
see
pron.st.3pers.,
idam.
VI.I3.I.
8.
-mc
VI. ima-
VII.5.3. VIII.4.1.
3.1.
asam
-"-'
-yam
VI.4.5.
14.3.
III.
II. 3.
abbyas
n.
of Jtidm;
a.
viiirht.
V.3.5.
cbhis (instr.pl.)
ebhyas
V.14.1.
(acc.sg.)
indriya
csu (loc.pl.)
VIII. 7.4.
asu ( loc.pl. f.)
VIII. 6.
IV.i.3,5;
V.I. 7;
idbyate
(pres.ind.pass.
III.
sg.)
-ram
T
(acc.sg.)
VI. 1. 1
VIT.
VIII.
4.6(3t.),7; 12. 1.
io.3(4t.),4(4t.);
13.1
(3t.).
III. 7.
icchate
sg-)
pres. i n d
VII.3.i(2t.);
14.
l(3t.).
rasya
T
VIII.7.
9.1.
-rcna (instr.sg.)
iS.i.
6.i(8t.); 15.3.
7.7.
ras (nom.sg.)
10.3
(gen.sg.)
11.33.
sg.)
VII.3.i.(2t.)
isikatula
36
chan
(pres.ppl.act.nom.
VIII. 3. 2;
sg.)
10.3;
9.2;
1.4.
-chantau
prcs.ppl.act.
v/is
IDaryaisisyam
cond.ind.
I.I 1.2.
act.sg.)
V,24.3.
-te (acc.du.)
iha adv.
anvicchama
pres.subj.
here.,
hither.
II. 10.2.
-cha (imv.act.sg.)
anvisya
24.5.
14.2.
VII. 6.1
VI.
8.4(3t.),6(2t.).
I
grd.
VIIL7.2.
f-pari look
about for.
1.12.3,5(2!.).
V.io.6,7(2t.)
VI.9.3; 10.2;
VIII.7.2.
act.pl.)
V.10.3.
here below j
;
24.2.
VIII.i.3,5,6(3t.); 3.1,
2; 8.4(2t.),5.
ihakara m. the sound iha.
-ras (nom.sg.)
1.
13.1.
i.
idr^a a. of this kitid.
-ras (nom.sg.)
-fas (nom.pl.) I A^. 14.2.
I.13.1.
v/iks look., behold^' consider. v/ir impelj cans, utter.
aiksata (impf .ind.mid.sg.)
Irayati
(pres.ind.act.sg.
VI.3.3(2t.);
3.2.
santa ( impf.ind.mid.pl. )
VI.2.4.
f-anu look after.
anvlksya grd.
VIII. 8.4.
aveksetham ( im v. mid.
VIILS.2.
du.)
-sya grd.
sam
VIII.8.1.
(vbl.f .acc.sg.)
VIII.8.i,2.
VII.4.i(2t.)
caus.)
5.i(2t.).
\/i5 oivn^ be
master of
rule.
iste
(pres.ind.mid.sg.)
6.8
I.
7.6,9.
v/is movc^flce.
f-samud
rise
71
to-
VI.6.1,2,3,4.
udaka
37
U
U
uttama a.
copula ami^
best.
a
prcc.
(stresses
also
cucl,
noxv
pron. or pel.).
1.
-mam
1.8;
-mcsu
IV. 1.3
7.8.
(2t.),5; 2.i,3(2t.);
3.
(loc.pl.)
VII. 4.1
5.1
uktha
n. pi-aisc;
recitation.
3.7.
su-
spirit.
-ram
cert.
I-7-5-
I.
7.4;
of
(esp.
i7-7(-t.)-
9.4;
8.4;
10.4.
rejected;
VII.25.l(2t.),2.
n. leavings utthatr m.
upriser;
sacrifice or
v/stha.
left.,
impure;
food),
-tam (nom.-acc.sg.n.)
1.
1.
also.
II.
2
7ip
or fort h^ departure.
-ne (loc.sg.) VIII.6.6.
a.
from
i.
16.
utkrantaprana
xvit/i
VII. 15.3.
VIII.6.5.
syl. in
analysis.
n.
-kam
word-
1.3.6,7 (3t.)
II.8.2.
6.7.
udaka
111.16.3,4,
it).
6; 17.7.
ud used as
ivatcr.
(nom.-acc.sg.) III.
19.3.
-ke
ed.
(acc.pl.)
w. a
10.4.
VI.1.3; 15.1;
VII. 5. 3 26.2.
I.
utkramana n. a going
2,3-
sec
V.34.4.
and.,
11.7.
a.
nom.-acc.sg.n.
III.15.1;
tham (nom.sg.)
-nan
VIII.7.4.
Uta conj.
I II.
Uttamapurusa m. the
VI.4.6(3t.),7.
24.4.
10.3.
III.
(acc.sg.n.)
preme
UCChista
highest.^
i7.7(3t.).
4; 5.2,4;
supl.
IV. 15. 1,
(loc.sg.)
I3.l(2t.).
I.4-3-
^'I-
udanmukha
38
udanmukha
a.
facing
nortJiivard.
khas
II.
(nom.sg.m.)
H-3'7: II.
udanc
a.
or
as
adv.
(nom.sg.m.)
III.
n.acc.
erly ;
northwards.
utlan
udak
V.io.
IV.15.5.
13.4.
1.
VI. 14. 1.
IV. 17.
(acc.sg.n.)
udici (uom.sg.f.)
III. 15.
2.
IV.5.3.
iidancas (nom.pl. m.) III.
III.
thirst
f.
iva-
(a.
(nom.sg.)
n.
udapana
the
(of
Sa-
man).
-ta
1. 2.
(nom.sg.)
6.8;
13;
IV.
11.6.
7.8;
-taram
-tar
trn
VI.8.5.
xvcll^
cistcr??;
water).
1.
(^nom-ssr.")
10
1. 10.
(acc.sg.)
1. 10.
(voc.sg.)
10;
o-oing
j(p^
ris-
mg
I.io.S.
(acc.pl.)
Saman ).
-thas (nom.sg.)
1. 1.1,2,
34'5; 3-4^7;
5-i(3t-)'
5(2t.)
4-
udaya m.
11.2.1,2;
3.1;
i; 6.1; 7.1
(acc.sg.)
-yat (abl.sg.)
III. 19.3.
10.3;
II.9.3.
udaragandilya m.nm.pr.
-yaya
V.33.1.
(dat.sg.)
II. 6.
tery^.
yam
-naya
10.
4.1.
nam
III. 13.
V.23.1.
5.
16.2.
4.1.
udicyas (nom.pl.f. )
udanya
of the body),
-nas (nom.sg.)
chanter
9-
udgitha
(dat.sg.)
I.9.3.
14.
17.
II.
1
15.
18.
4.1;
i.
5.
8.2; 9.5;
12.1;
1 ;
19.1
13.
16.
;
20.
udgithabhajin
tham
(acc.sg.)
l-i-y?
S; 2.1,2,3,4,5,6,7,10,11,
s-i'-'So;
12,14;
9.2,3;
-the
10.10;
5-3;
11.6,7.
I.8.l(3t.).
(loc.s^^r.)
uparistat
-nam
39
3-
upatapin
a.
sick.
-pinam
II.
udgithaksara
n.
a syllable
<5/' udgitha.
-rani (acc.pl.)
VI.8.1.
-kam
(acc.sg.)
-kaya
(dat.sg.)
udbhijja
1.3,6,7.
a.
III. 11.4.
jn-opagated by
VI.
(nom.sg.m.)
II. 8. 2
10.3.
a.
sharing
in calamity.
jinas (nom.pl.m.)
II. 9.
7f.
{sitting do^vn
sea
secret
teacher)
doctrine^
esp.
an Upanisad (a cert.
class of writings which
discuss the secret
3-I-
a(h'.-prcp.
unto,
III. 1 9.4.
to-
fo^
wardj
11.
IV. 4.5;
.4.
II.
2; 12.2; 13.2.
2 upa used as syll. in wordanalysis.
II. 8. 2.
Upakosala m.nm.pr.
las (nom.ss^.) IV.io. i.
-la
9.7;
upanisad
near
V.17.1.
sprotits.
upa
lamity.
upadravabhajin
uddalaka m.nm.pr.
kas
(nom.sg.) V.ii.3.
accident., ca-
-vas (nom.sg.)
9-5-
-jas
\'I.i5.
(acc.sg.)
I.
udgithabhajin a. shan'nothe
in
Upadrava m.
udgitha.
VIII.4.2.
-pi (nom.sg.)
(voc.s<;^.)
IV.14.1
(2t.).
-sada
VIIL8.4.
I.i.
(instr.sg.)
10.
Uparistat adv.-prep.
from
abovc^after.,behijid.
2.2.
V.
VII.25.l(2t.),2.
upavadin
40
a.
upavadin
talking
ulbavrta
at,
VIII.i.3(2t.);6.2(2t.);
abusive.
-dinas
8.4.
bhe
(nom.-acc.du.n.-f.
6.1.
addi-
n.
upavyakhyana
tional meaning',
f^^''-
ther explatiation.
-nam (nom.sg.)
III. 19.
4.1.
I.i.i,io;
lasting
several days,
-dais (instr.pl.) III. 17. 2.
yam
of both kinds,
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
an.)
-thas (nom.sg.)
upakarana
n.
fetching
upasana
n.
seat,
attend-
(nom.sg.m.)
-nam (nom.sg.)
II.i.i.
ubha a. both.
bhau (nom.-acc.du.m.)
1. 1.
10; 7.7.
VII. 12. 1.
IV.
n. breast.
V.I 8.2.
a.
tending.
-vatas (acc.pl.)
-wide-ex-
VII. 12.
ululu
(a..?)
m.
shozit,yell.
III. 19.
-lavas (nom.pl.)
3(2t.)n.
bag enveloping
the
of an
ance; worship.
both
16.5.
uras
ulba
1,
xvith
a.
feet.
-pat
V.S.i.
near, cotnmence?nent.
nat
11.24.3,7,
(abl.sg.)
i.
VIII.7.2.
ubhayapad
-(nom.sg.)
Upastha m. lap; sexual or- urugayavant
wom-
1.2.
(nom.pl.)
(esp. of a
I.
2.2,3,4,5,6.
-ye
ajlo-wing to;
place of refuge.
nani
1.
3. 8.
(nom.pl.)
gans
(instr.du.)
both.
festival
upasarana
a.
ubhaya
n.
3.
5(2t.).
-bhal)hyam
IV. 16.5.
1,
^g-S'-
-bam
ulba;
zvo?nb.
hidden
in
the
usasti
-tas
re
41
rtu eka
tra; pi. the
-(noin.sg.) 1.1.3,4.5(21);
man
6.1,2,3,4,5,8;
3.4(21.);
7-1.2,3,4,5.
-cam
III. 12.5.
(instr.sg.)
V.2.7.
cas
(i^cn.sg.,noin.-acc.
pi.)
1.1.2;
I.2(2t.).
4.3.
111.
7.2.
-ci
II. 5. 2.
V.1.8,
(loc.sg.)
1.3.9; 4.3;
sacrijicino- at the
right tivie ; m. priest,
applying to am- one of
a.
7.l(2t.),
2(2t.),3(2t.),4(2t.).
-can (nom.du.)
rgbhy as
-vijc (dat.sg.)
V.11.5.
-vijas (acc.pl.)
IV. 17.4
sam
be fiil-
pass,
(pres.ind.
p a s s.pl., Wh.Gr.
774) VII.14.2.
-dhycta (pres.opt.mid.-
(tr.
intr.).
samrdhyanti
ac
3-
ream (gcn.pl.)
thrive, prosper
and
fUed.
IV. 17.
(abl.pl.)
adhvaryu,
\-
III. 17.6.
four:
the
6.l(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.), x^rdh
4(3t.),5(2t.);
1,
9,10,1
rtvij
4.4.
ca
(nom.sg.)
(acc.si^.)
possessing the
a.
seasons.
pass.sg.)
-ddham
ChU.).
1.3.
2.
(pass.])pl.nom.
V.2.S.
sg.n.)
-sim (acc.sg.)
l6.T,3.
I-3.9-
eka num.a.
evam.
one, alone.
kas
(nom.sg.m.)
5.3,^.
3;
III.6.3; 7.3;
9.3;
10.3.
I.
8.
IV.3.
ekata
6; 9.3;
VII.S.i
VI. 7.3.
17.9.
;
26.3.
V II 1. 6.6
oitJi . ]
VIL4.I;
7.5.
-kam
;
13.
4.7
VI.i.4,5,6.
VI.3.1.
ekata
VII. eta-
having oncfoot^
lame.
-pat (nom.sg.m.)
txvcnty-o?ic.
ekaQata
n.
hundred and
one.
-tarn (acc.sg.)
esas (nom.sg.m.)
ekadaga num.
1. 1.3
4.4
3.1;
6.6,7,8; 7
II.21
5,6,9; 9.2(2t.).
III
3;
24-5'9'i5'^<^-
I.I
I.
8.3; II. I
13.
13.1
i5-i(2t-),3(3t-).4(2t-)
6;
i6.i(4t.)
13.1;
8.6;
17.8,9.
10.2,4,8;
13.1,3
14.1,3;
15.1,3
16.1,2; 17.1
eleven.
15
i4.3(3t.),4;
2.9;
VIII. 11.
3(2t.)1
frst.
f.
1.5.
this.,
pi-()n.st.3pcrs.
5.i(3t.),3;
las
ekavingati
V.l
(dat.sg.)
3.3,8,9,11;
alone.
-^as (nom.sg.)
VI. 3. 3,
16.3.
a.
'71.
e.
4-
26.2.
ekala
C2'
'
(acc.sg.f.)
-kasmai
VI.9.1.
"^.G.
-kam
-ke (nom.pl.)
ekapad
1.
-ras (nom.sg.)
13. 3.
ekaika a. each one singly.
-ku (nom.sg.f.) VI. 3. 4;
I^'.I6.
1,
f. unity.
-trim (acc.sg.)
'
~>
VI.ii.
(iustr.sg.)
3.
5.1.
(acc.sg.f.)
kena
3-D
VL3.l(3t.),3;
(2t.).
II.10.3.
n.
ekayana
1.)
kam (nom.sg.n.,acc.sg.
m.)
43
VI. 7. 3,
-ka (nom.sg.f.)
6.
eta-
9.4;
VI
34.4.
10.3;
I.I
eta-
4-1
^^3-
VIL4.3;
15.4;
16.1;
25.3; 26.
2.
VIILi.3,5;
3.3,4
4.2(2t.),3;
4; 6.i(4t.),6; 7.4(41.);
7.4(21.);
S-3; 9-i'-'3;
i;
3,4;
11.1,3;
12.3,5.
etat (nom.-acc.sg'.u.)
1.
5(3t.),6,7,S(2t.),io(2t.);
2455A14;
4-i4(2t.)v5
(2t.); 6.i,2,4,5(2t.),6
8.7
7-i.2,3,4(3t.),7,9;
8;
II.1.4;
9.2.
2.3
6.3,4,5(2t.)
11.1(41.),
3; 12.4; 15.1.
csa (uom.sg.f.) 1. 1.8;
3;
2.
ni.12.5;
ii-5'7.9-
IV.3.S; 14.1
13.7,8.
9.
8.3(21.);
10.1(31.);
VIII.8.5.
17.9.
ctam (acc.sg.m.)
10,11,12;
1. 2.
3.2;
3; 2.1; 3.2;
2(21.);
(21.);
II.
2.1;
VIILi.5(2t.);
i(2t.).
3.3,4(21.)
i-i(3^-)'
8.1,3
VII.
13.1.
i?2,3(2t.),4;
5.3,
(2t.);
4.5;
i.7(2t.);
(2t.),5(2t.)
9,
5.3,4;
III.
7.6; 9.3(2l.),4.
I.
14.4; 15.
19.4.
IV.5.3
7.4
6.4(21.);
(21.);
8.4(21.);
11.2
2.3(2t.);
3.3
(21.);
I2.3(2t.);
13.2
(2t.); 4.2,3(2t.);
5.2,
(2t.);
15.2(21.).
V.
4(2t.);
3(2t.); 6.i,2,3(3t.);7.
i,2,3(3t.); S.i,2,3(3t.);
2.3,4,5,9;
2,34.5:S(3t-);
i6.7(2t.);
18.2.
(2t.);
3. 1,
H-4;
17.6(21.);
IV.1,3,4,6;
3.6
4.2(2t.),4(2t.),
V.
10.8;
II.
2.1,2,3(2t.);
7;
13.2;
24.2,3.
VI.
VI.I2.2.
VIII.
10.4;
lam
1.3;
12.6.
(acc.sg.f.)
III. II. 3;
2; 17.3.
12.2.
1.
13.4.
IV. 2.
VI.14.2(2l.).
VIII.8.4.
Icna
(instr.sg.)
1.
2.9.
IV.15.6. VIIL8.5;
12.
5-
9-:3;
2,3;
10-2,3.
VIILII.3.
1.
-tasya (gcn.sg.)
3-5; 6.S; 7.5.
1.9;
II.9.2,
3545A7'S.
III.13.1.
V.1S.2. VL12.3. VII.
26.1.
111.3.4.
-tasmin (loc.sg.)
111.16.2,4,6.
1.1.6.
1-^.4.2
-tasyam (loc.sg.f.)
152,3,4,5;
-tail
5.
1.6.
).
-tas
II.
17.1,2
VIII.6.1.
IV.17.2.
tan ( acc.pl. m.)
III. 13.
V.
IV.3.3,3.
6(2t.).
10.10.
\"III.i.6
3-5
(2t.) , 12.5.
-tais (instr.pl.)
VIII. 6. 5.
-tesam (geii.pl.)
tasam (gen.pl. f.)
3.
VL4.7.
etad ad\
1.
10.3.
II. 20.
7-1^2,3,4.
45
etadatmya
iiatui-c
having this
(BR.); see
a.
aitadatmya.
etadupanisada a.
having
11. 23. 2.
III.4.2;5.2,4(2t.); 13.
Upanisad.
-das (nom.sg.m.) VIII.
1.
10.4;
1.3.
i.i
6.2;
-tayos
3.8.
;
iS.i.
V.io.3,9;
VIII. 3. 2
12.6.
8.4.
etarhi
adv.
time;
(gen. du.m.)
V.
Jtozv^
then.
at
this
1.8.6,8.
V 1.7.3,6.
etr, see \/i.
10.8.
-tani
'2
3.5;
I3.2(2t.).
11.1,4,6,8.
II.I.2(4t.),
eva
46
4;
IV.I.3,4,6,7;
2; 5.1
i;
II.
12.1
4.
13.
V.i.i3(2t.),
15.2,6.
VI. 7. 2,4
I4(2t.).
I.
111.
23.3,.f(4t.).
19.4.
VII.5.2;
S.
15.2,3.
VIII.io.2,4.
VI.
2.
(2t.),6;
VII. 15. 3.
l(3t.),2(2t.), 3(2t.),
;
4.2
7.4
9.3(31.)
13-1;
I.I
15-1.3.4.5
16.1,3,4;
(2t.);
12.
17-4.
5,6,9,10.
i8.2(2t.),3,4,
IV.i.i,5;2.3(2t.),4,5;3.
i;
1.2. i.
(acc.pl. m.)
16.4
17.3,5
5.6; i9-^.3-
io-i.3,5(3t.);
VIII.1.4.
V.10.2.
15-4.5^7;
(2t.),6(2t.);
4,8
nan
4;
2.
2.3,6;
V.i.i5(2t.);
6(3t-).7; 4-1
i;
7.1
3.3,
5-1
6.
8.1; 9.2(2t);
6.i(2t.),2
5-3,3.4.5;
(2t.),3(2t.),4(2t.),5,6
(3t.),8;7.i(2t.),2(2t.),
i;
I
6.
14.1;
13.1;
1
7.
15.1;
18. 1,2
(lit.); 24.4.
VI.i.4,5,6,7;
2.l(4t.),2
3(2t.),4(3t.),5(2t),7,
(3t.),3(2t.),4(2t.);
8,9;
10.5,
ii.3(2t.),5,9;
6.2; 8.2(3t.),3,4,5(2t.),
9.i(2t.),4;
7,10,11
13.3,4.
II.i.2(2t.),3(2t);
10.4;
6;
9.2,4;
io.i(2t.),2,
3;
11.2,3;
12.3;
3;
i4.2(3t.),3;
13.2,
15.3;
16.1,2,3.
4(2t.).
III.i.i,2(3t.);
3.i(3t.);
i(3t.);
3.
2.i(3t.);
4.i(3t.);
5.
6.i,2,3(4t.),4;
7.i,2,3(4t.),4;
8.1,2,3
(4t-)'4; 9-i.3,3(4t.),4;
io.i,2,3( 4t. ),4;
(2t.),3,6(2t.);
2.1
VII.i.3(3t.),4;
(3t.);
6.i(2t.);
io.i(2t.)
13-1;
5.2
7.1;
i.i(2t.)
15-3.3.4;
17.1(21.);
16.1;
lS.l(2t.)
I.I
19.1(21.)
20.1(21.)
12.2,3,
21.1(21.)
22.1(21.)
evaihvid
esas
47
17.2
21.3
"0-.i(3t.);
2(3t.); 36.1,3.
2.1,2.
III-6-3;
3455^7^9^10;
3.2,3;
10-3;
5.1
(4t.),2(4t.),3(2t.),4(2t.)
7-2(2t.),4; S.I,
6.2,5;
3(-t.),4(3t-); 9-i(4t-).
19.2
20.2
23.4; 24.16(21.).
VIILi.3,5(2t.),6;
4.2(2t.),3(2t.);
18.3
s-3;
7-3;
1
9-3;
1,
15.2(21.);
16.7;
45556(21.);
19.4.
IV.i.2,4,6;
18.3,
3.8(2t.);
5.
2(3t-)'3(2t.); io.i(2t.),
3,4(2t.);
8.4(2t.)
ii.r(3t.),2
(3t.),3(3t.)
i2.3(3t.).
a. knowins^ so or
evamvid
such.
vit
7. 8.
V.24.4.
9.2
ii.2(2t.);
13.2(31.);
1.
(nom.sg.m.)
IV. 17.8,9,10.
evam
i2.2(2t.);
V.2.I.
V. 1. 8,9, 10,1
(3t.); 12.2;
2;
10.10
13.2;
16.2;
15.2;
14.
17.2;
24.2,3(3t.),5.
7-35
10.
6; 8.3,3,4,5,7; 9.3;
2;
1,12
II. 2;
VII.3-I
13.
14.2.
3.1,7;
15-154(3^-) ; 24.
2; 25.2(3t.); 26.1 (3t.).
4-34(3t-)'5; 6-7(-t.);
1.1.7,8;
3.7,8,14;
12.4;
13.4.
6.2
10.6;
2;
7.2
8.3
9.8
H.2; 12.3;
14.2
9.1,2,3;
(2t.);
C 2
13.
16.
10.4;
evammahant a.
-han
11.1,2
i2.3(2t.);
15.1.
thzis great.
(nom.sg.m.)
12.2.
VI.
aitadatmya
48
ka-
AI
aitadatmya
this
a.
having
12.3; 13-3; 14-3;
M.M.,
3; 16.3.
BR., Capp. treat as n. aitareya m.nm.pr.
nature.
subst.
Gr.
21
and
-yas (nom.sg.)
AJP. airammadiya
XI. 412.)
-yam
VI.
of
10.3;
11.3;
II. 23.4
I.I.I (2t.),5,6,8,9
ing.
(3t.);
(3t.);
rena
(instr.sg.)
II. 23.4.
3;
OJas n. strength.
(nom.sg.m.)
4.i(2t.),4;
5.1,
VIII.6.
i2.5(4t.).
5-
OSadhi
f)Iant^ herb.
f.
-dhayas (nom.pl.)
1.1,2.
-dhinam
1. 1.2.
(gen.pl.)
osadhivanaspati m. plants
5-
om
III. 16.7.
n.nm.pr.
a cert. lake,
(nom.sg.n.)
8.7; 9.4;
vi
15-
(Bo.,
of
and
tayas
sacred
mystic
syl.
trees.
(nom.pl.) V.10.6.
AU
aupamanyava m.nm.pr.
V as (nom.sg.) V.ii.i.
va (voc.sg.) V.I 2. 1.
ka-
tern
and
ivho.^
a.)
ivhat (subst.
(2)
indef.
auhoikara
m.
the
sound
auhoi.
-ras
(nom.sg.)
some.,
any.,
1.
13.2.
certai?i
ka kada
cid)
as
n.acc.
(3)
adv.
8. II.S.i.
I V.I. 4,
4; 16.2,4,6,7.
6; 9-3; 10-3; M-2- V.
'
34;
ii-i;
2
22
VIII
VII.1.3;
1.2,4;
7-3
thicket.
-ma
^-i'
katara
15.
T
1
"^
17.
kasmai
(dat.sg.)
I'7'9'
14.
1.
II.
VII.
i
o o
O*-"'
ka
(loc.sg.)
(nom.-acc.sg.)
io.5(4t.).
compar.
V.io.
adv.
how.
IV. 1.3.
V.I.
8,9,10,11
3.4,5.
VI.
interr.
about (loc).
Wh.Gr.
n.
kam
a.
pron.
24.1.
2
1.4
11. 24.2.
kathain
III. 11.
6.
kasmin
1.
S.
(acc.sg.f.
1.4
11.4.6,8.
-rena (inst.sg.)
j.l.
kam
1.8.4(41.),
(nom.sg.f.)
(2t.)
15.2.
5
(acc.sg.m.)
V.12.1
13. 1 ;
16.1
1.
(2t.).
5(2t.),7(2t.); 9.1.
I.i.
VIII.7.4.
4(2t.).
mat (nom.sg.n.)
who of two.
kam
whosoever.
several.,
-mas (nom.sg.m.)
1.2.
2; 9.2; 10.3;
ka (nom.sg.f.)
wet -
oj"
sam
V.2.8.
(acc.sg. )
kaksa m. hiding - flace^
III.12.1; 15.
2-i(3t)j2;
ro 2
20 2
vessel
(11.)
al; nfctal.
kim
kansa m.
why,
ho"d,\
49
kadarya
a.
506.
stingy, avari-
cious.
IV. kada
intern
III.11.2.
adv.
whe7i.
kaniyans
50
a.
kaniyans
kama
sinall-
compar.
VII.
-mani (nom.-acc.pl.)
lO.I.
a.
reddish
ivith
pollen (Bo.);
see
5.1
a.
malodorous^ disV.10.7.
(acc.sg.f.)
kapyasa a. like an
fundament.
sam
(nom.sg.n.)
1.3.8.
kala
VIII.
a.
tremble violently
caus. shake.
VII. 8. 1.
III. 13.8.
small part^
f.
one-sixteenth.
esp
-(nom.sg.) IV.5.2(4t.);
6-3(4t-);
7-3(4t-);
8.
VI.7.3,6.
VI. 7.
3.6.
\/kas scratch.
kasamanam
(pres.ppl.
mid.acc.sg.m.) I^".I.8.
kaksaseni m. nm.pr.
-nim (acc.sg.) IV. 3. 5.
kapeya m. nm.pr.
kartr m. doer.
-ta (nom.sg.)
n.
V. 1.8.
quarrclsonie.
-hinas (nom.pl.) VII.6.1.
(pres.opt.act.
-nau (acc.du.)
VIII.
a.
-lanam (gen.pl.)
tremble.
sg.caus.)
karna m. ear.
V.3.9.
%von by xvork.
dtimb.
3(4t.).
f-a
VI.16.1.
9.1.
deed^
sacred
(nom.sg.)
IV. 3. 7.
IV.
3.5.
-yam (ace. sg.)
-ya (voc.sg.) IV. 3. 6.
-yas (nom.sg.)
kama m.
ivork^ rite.
ma
a.
1.6. 7.
2.10.
VII.8.1;
VII.
(loc.pl.)
-las (nom.pl.)
kalahin
kamayate (pres.ind.mid.
karman
26.1.
(nom.sg.na.)
apc'^s
akampayet
(gen.pl.)
1.6.
kala
V.10.7.
(nom.pl.)
sg.caus.)
tas
of mal-
a.
odoroiis conduct.
-masu
karmajita
kapuyacarana
y/kamp
I.
4.1,3;
4.3.
p;ustlnrr.
nas
14.
-manam
kapyasa.
yam
VII.3.1
3.5.
kapilasa
VIII.15.
I.
-yas (nom.sg.n.)
kapuya
V.2.8.
3.
cr^ less.
I\".i4.
tvish,
longing.
-mas (nom.sg.)
1. 10.4.
kamacara
VIIL
V.1.4. VIL14.2.
-mam
1.
(accsjjj.)
i3(2t.);
kutas
1.6; 3.
i(2t.),4.
kim, see
7.9.
mas (nom.pl.)
III. 19.
-man
VIII.1.6
7.1,2,3;
(2t.);
manam
12.5,6.
1.
(gcn.pl.)
zui/l
a.
-tas (nom.sg.)
13.2(21.).
VI.9.3
xvorms., butterflies.,
-kam
I
kirti
at will^ freely.
n.
and
kamagana m.
-nasya (gen.sg.)
I'7.9-
desirable^ rclat-
a zvish.
V.2.9.
(loc.pl.)
f.
8.1
fnentiou.,
ti77ie.
II.
3.1.
lo.i.
renown.,
III. 13.4.
(nom.sg.)
-tya (instr.sg.)
II. 11. 3;
20.2.
kirtimant
17.2
1S.2
19.2
111.18.3,4,5,6.
a.
having re-
nowti.
VIII.15.1.
kutas interr.adv.
6.
VII. 2.
(acc.sg.)
7.1
glory.
-tis
VI.7.1.
kamalayana m. nm.pr.
nas (nom.sg.) IV.io. i.
-lam (acc.sg.)
aiits.
5-4-
iurr to
I.
V.
10.2.
ox freely.
a.
VI.H.3;
3.4.
at
(nom.sg.m.) VII.
VIII.1.6; 4.3;
25.2.
-yesu
IV. 14.2, 3.
kitapatamgapipilaka
moving
ras
kamam adv.
truly
1.7,
8; 2.14.
kamacara
supra,
(cmph.prec. word).
1.2. 13.
(acc.pl.)
VII.10.2.
ka-
indeed.,
^.G^'^.
3.2.
kamya
s.v.
adv.
kila
3(2t.).
51
whence.,
xvhy.,how. V.11.5. VI.
kumara
52
kumara m.
\/kr
VI.i6.i,2.
boy^yotith.
kuru m. nm.pr.
pi. the
Kuru.
people of
IV. 17.9.
-riin (acc.pl.)
;
(loc.sg.)
V.12.1,3;
3
15.2
13.1,2; 14.
16.3 ; 17.2.
(of
fruits, etc.).
sas
1.
(noni.pl.)
-san (acc.pl.)
1.
10.7.
10.2.
lam
ivell.
(acc.sg.n.)
karavani
pres.subj.act.
VI.3.3.
sg-)
kuryat (pres.opt.act.sg.)
II.24.2(2t.).
-rviya (pres.opt.mid.sg.)
VII.3.1.
(pres.opt.mid.sg.)
III. 14.1.
IV.17.10.
akarot (impf.ind.act.sg.)
VI.3.4.
cakara (perf.ind.act.sg.)
1.2. 13 ; 12.3.
IV.6.1 ;
7.1
8.1.
V.3.6,7
VI.13.1,3.
3,5.
-krus
V.I
I.8.i(2t.).
words),
karoti
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
1.3.5.
V.8.I.
1.
perf.ind.act.pl.
1.1,2. VI.4.5,6(3t.),
-kre
perf.ind.mid.sg.
IV. 1. 1
1.3.10,1 1,12.
-las (nom.pl.)
VII.3.I;
1.
7-
IV. 10.
2,4.
14.
rvita
abode.
-Ic
(skr)
VII.21.
22.i(3t.).
kurutas (pres.ind.act.du.)
I.i.io(2t.).
4.1
10.2.
-krate (perf.ind.mid.du.)
VIII.8.r,2.
-krire (perf.ind.mid.pl.)
1-2.2,3,4,5,6,7;
akarsit
lo.ii.
(aor.ind.act.sg.)
VI.16.1.
krta pass.ppl., which see.
-rvanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
15.1.
IV.i.4,6; 15.5.
-rute (pres.ind.mid.sg.)
karayam
sg-)
(caus.vbl.f.acc.
V.I
1.5.
krcchrin
(-upa
v/klp
sent.
tarn
upakrte (pass.ppl.loc.sg.)
IV. 16.2,4.
IV.4.5.
(-vya separate^ divide.
nirnkrtya grd.
vyakaravani
nom.sg. n.)
IV. 3.
-ma
(pres.subj.
VI. 3. 2.
I.
f.
dtiction^ ivork.
VI.3-3-
8(2t.).
act.sg.)
53
make ready
(nom.sg.) VII.21.1.
-tim (acc.sg.) VII. 21. i.
pariskrta pass.ppl., which krga a. lean, tveak.
f-pari
-tis
.,
adorn.
9anam
see.
[-sam
ptit
together.,
adorn
co7isecrate,y
(cf.
Sanskrit^.
sariiskaroti
-kurvanti
pi.)
pres.ind.act.
|-hin say
cow
to calf),
hiiilvurvanti (pres.ind.act.
ncakrus (perf.ind.act.pl.)
I.I 2.4.
krcchrin
a.
finding trouble;
see mithunin.
-rl (nom.sg.)
krta
a.
-nam
(gen.pl.) IV.4.5.
black,
(nom.sg.n.) III. 3.
VI.4.1, 2,3,4,6.
naya (dat.sg.)
V.3.7.
a. done^ proper ; n.
stake at ga?ne^ lucky
III. 17.
6.
n.
krsnayasa
iron.
VI. 1.6.
sam (nom.sg.)
v/klp be
in
order.,
spond., fall
to
corre-
the share
of
kalpante
II.9.2.
pi.)
3.
(pres.ind.act.
IV.16.2,3.
sg.)
^
krsna
(-
(pres.ind.mid.
II.2.3; 5.2.
pi.)
sam
succeed.,
pros-
determine,
imag-
ine.
sariikalpate (pres.ind.mid.
sg.)
VII.4.2(4t.),
kaikeya
54
pante
kva
akramatc
(pres.ind.mid.pl.)
VII.4.2(3t.).
samakalpctam (impf.ind.
mid.du.)
panta
VIL4.2(2t.).
(impf.ind.mid.pl.)
samklptan (pass.ppl.acc.
4.1
iiccakrama (perf.ind.act.
1.2.6.
VII.
utkramis (iniaug.aor.ind.
V.I. 1 2.
act.sg.)
5.1.
kaikeya m.nm.pr.
yas (nom.sg.)
udakramisyat (cond.ind.
V.I 4.2,
act.sg.)
V.11.4.
ntkrante (pass.ppl.loc.sg.)
kola
n. Kola-fr7iit.
-Ic (acc.du.)
VII.3.1.
V.I. 7.
uccikramisan
ko^a m.
mid.sg.)
-mire
(2t.).
V.I
III. 15.3.
(acc.sg.)
(perf.ind.
IV. 2. 1, 3.
kausitaki m.nm.pr.
-kis (nom.sg.)
V.1.12.
j-prati return.
praticakrame
thology^.
9as (nom.sg.)
-9am
(pres.ppl.
des. nom.sg.)
V. 1.8,9,10,11.
sg.)
(pres.ind.act.
sg.caus.)
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
1.2.9.
VII.4.3.
pi.)
VIII.6.5.
sg.)
manti
VII.4.3.
kalpayati
(prcs.ind.mid.
Vni.6.5.
sg.)
1.5.2,4.
kratumaya
a.
cndoived
-cam (nom.sg.n.)
with wisdom.
yas (nom.sg.m.)
14.
^/kram
|_a
II. 2 2.
I.
kva
III.
'
where,
indef.-sv.
any w her e.
interr.adv.
whither/
1.
ca
II. 24. 2.
ksattr
khadj'^otamatra
-taram
ksatra
I V.
(acc.sg.)
1.7,8.
IV. 1.5.
ksTyate
warrior
caste.
III. 1.4;
sg.)
3.3; 3.
rule^ second or
n.
55
pres.ind.pass.-
mid.sg.) VIII.x.6(2t.);
6.5.
-yante (pres.ind.pass.pl.)
12.2
IV. 1.2
ksudra a. small.
1
13.3.
VI 1. 1. 4.
-rani (nom.pl.n.) V.io.S.
VI
1. 1.2; \/ksudh be
-yam (acc.sg.)
hungry.
-(nom.sg.)
2.1
ksudhitas (pass.ppl.caus.
7.1.
f.
birth-sta-
ksatriyayoni
tion of a ruler.
-nim
(acc.sg.)
a.
ksayyaloka
(?)nom.pl.)
V.34.5.
V.10.7.
having a
ksobhate
(pres.ind.mid.
perishable world.
III.5.3.
sg-)
kas (nom.pl.) VII. 35. ksetra n. field land.
^
-rani
3.
-v/ksar
melt
glide.,
flo%i\
2.
ksetrabhaga
away.
\-\\Jlow asunder.
vyaksarat
VII. 24.
(acc.pl.)
m.
j^iece
of
land.
(impf.ind.act.
-gam
KH
kha
n.
hole.,
in
hub
opening
break, section
(csjo.
of wheel or in
as large
insecf) fire-fiy.
-ras (nom.sg.m.)
io.5(4t.).
a.
a.
as a {^glowing, fying
sky., air,
(of
book).]
VI. 7.
3-
broke?ij
m.
ram(acc.sg.ni.) VL7.5.
khalu
56
khalu continuative
emph.pcl.
8; 5.1,5.
III. 14.1
lo.i.
(2t.).
V.2.7
VI.2.2;
2;
10.6;
6.2;
4.7;
3.3,6,
II.i.i(3t.);
9.1,8;
18.1.
10.2;
or
indeed^
iioiv^
I.i.io;
verily.
gandhar vas
3.1,4;
8.2,4,6;
1
9.
VIII.
1.2.
acc.sg.)
1.
-ditva grd.
\/khid depress
a.
(fig.).
gone/
n.
impf
VIT.
5;
5(2t.),7(2t.); 9.1.
(acc.sg.)
IV. 14.
I.
act.sg.)
see.
y/khya appear^
show
(-anuvya
criniinately
dis-
further^
explain.
ind.act.sg.)
10.4;
(fut.
VIII.9.3
1.3.
n.
odors
and
-ye (nom.du.)
VIII. 2.
6.
gandhamalyaloka m,
ivorld
and
of odors
garla?zds.
14.2.
(nom.sg.)
nd
\ .\.\2.
rlands.
garlands.
-tim
samakhidat
going, gandhamalya
-tis
(pres.opt.act.
V.I. 12.
sg.)
parikhyayate (pres.ind.
pass.sg.) VIII. 7,4.(21.).
1.10.5,7.
tarn (nom.sg.n.)
f.
sariikhidct
10.2.
extension.
gati
anuvyakhyasyami
gata
-kena
(instr.sg.)
VIII.
2.6.
gandhamalyalokakama
a.
mas (nom.sg.)
VIII.
2.6.
gandhara \/i ga
enly
singers^ the
Gandharvas.
II.31.1.
gandhara m. nm.pr,
-ras (nom.pl.) VI. 14.2.
VI. 14.2.
-ran (acc.pl.)
-rebhyas (abl.pl.) VI.
x/ga-in go^ come^ arrive at.
gacchati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
II. 13.
IV. 15.
V.3.7. VIII.
20.2.
17.9.
-chanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
6.2.
VIII.3.3;
cheyus
II. 1.4.
(pres.opt.act.pl.)
III. 19.4.
(perf.ind.act.sg.)
VIII.8.4.
aganma
(aor.ind.act.pl.)
III.17.7.
gamayati (pres.ind.act.sg.
IV. 1 5.6.
V.
cans.)
10.2.
yanti
(pres.ind.act.pl.
cans.)
VI.9.1.
yatu
(imv.act.sg.caus.)
V.2.6.
jigamiset
sg.des.)
|-a
-chet
(pres.ind.
VI. 10.3.
mid.pl.)
(pres.opt.act.sg.)
V.19.1.
ajagama (perf.ind.act.sg.)
IV.15.1.
VIII.7.2.
agamas
come
return.
(pres.opt.act.
V.2.4.
to^
arrive
at.,
(aor.ind.act.sg.)
VIII.9.2
-misyas
Sg.)
6.3,5.
jagama
agacchamahc
-gmatus(perf.ind.act.du.)
14.1.
57
10.3;
1.2.
(cond.ind.act.
V.I 2.2
v/2 ga~gayatri
58
adhyagisthas
VII. 1.3.
mid.sg.)
go
|-apa
(aor.ind.
aivay^
22.2.
yatu
apagat
ob-
approach^
(-abhi
tain.
udgayati
sg.)
hupa
4.1.
act.sg.) VIII.i4.i(2t.).
approach^ come
1.
-ta (nom.sg.)
I.
III.
gatha
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
I.7.6(2t.)
1.7.
giyate (pres.ind.pass.sg.)
1.6.1,2,3,4,5;
abhigayati
religious
(pres.ind.act.
(pres.-fut.imv.act.
abhyagasisam
actsg.)
(aor.ind.
1-5-2,4.
gain by singing.
II.
-ram (nom.sg.n.)
III.
16.1.
gayatri
I-54-
sg-)
(nom.-acc.sg.)
11.1,2.
to.,
11.24.3,7,11.
sg-)
IT
song^
1.6.8.
-ram
7.1,2,3,4.
f.
verse.
1,
-yanti
[_a
I.11.7.
sg.)
gayati(pres.ind. act.sg.)
10.10; II. 6.
gatr m. singer.
sing., chant.
3.4;7.7(2t.),9(2t.).
3.1,4;
udagasyas (cond.ind.act.
(aor.ind.act.sg.)
II.I.2(4t.).
yatat
(pres.ind.act.
1.1.1,9;
-gasyasi (fut.ind.act.sg.)
to.
npagat
I.
(imv. act.sg.)
12.2.
VI.4. 1,2,3,4.
12.
II.
yet (pres.opt.act.sg.)
ish.
yz ga
II.22.2(2t.).
1.7.9.
van-
f.
cert,
sacred
of (consisting of 3x8
sylL).
-(nom.sg.)
(2t.),2,5;
III.
16.1.
2. 1.
garhapatya
gautama
59
-yas (nom.pl.)
garhapatya m. sacred Jire
T 1
of the householder.
yas (nom.sg.) IV.ii. v/gr sivallow.
V.lS.2.
I.
jagara
IH-S-
(perf.ind.act.sg.)
IV.3.6.
-yasya (gen.sg.) II.24.3.
gesna m. singer.
-ye (loc.sg.) IV. 1 7.4.
-nau (nom.du.)
gir f. praise^ speech^ ivord.
1.6.8;
-ras (nom.pl.)
7-5(2t.)I-3'6.
m. f. bull., O.Y, cow.
gi 2nd syl. of udgitha. 1. 3. go
nom.
gavas (nom.pl.) II. 6.1
6,7 (3t.). Cf. gir
gitavadita n. song
and mu-
sic.
gitavaditaloka m. -world of
SOUS' cDid music.
-kena(instr.sg.)VIII.2.8
gitavaditalokakama
a.
de-
IV.4.5
gas (acc.pl.)
mtisic.
6.
8.1
(2t.)
gobhis
IV.
(instr.pl.)
2.3.
gavam
(gen.pl.)
IV. 2.
1,2,3,4.
and
7.i(2t.);
i(2t.);
VIII. 2. S.
-te (nom.du.)
sons'
18.1.
of gir.
-vam
and horses.
(acc.sg.)
VII. 24.2.
guru
a.
m.
V.10.8.
heavy.,
vetterable ;
venerable person.,
esp. teacher.
-ros (gen.sg.)
V.10.9.
guhya grdv.
to be
coveredj
hidden^ secret.
V.2.3.
-taye (dat.sg.)
gautama m. nm.pr.
-mas (nom.sg.)
-mam
-ma
VIII.15.1.
IV.3.6.
-pas (nom.sg.)
goqruti m.nm.pr.
4.1
I
V. 3.6,7
(voc.sg.)
5.1
17.1..
6.1
V.3.6.
IV.4.3.
(acc.sg.)
7.1
8.
Co
-v/grabh
apigrhya
ghrana
|-prati seize
seize.
[-api shut.
f-
in.
act.sg.)
village.
''hold
tip^''
udgrhnati
[-upod
lift
me
I5-I-
pp
IV. 2. 5.
1
pres.
act.nom.sg.)
VI. 14.2.
VI. 14.2.
(acc.sg.)
(abl.sg.)
(loc.sg.)
-miln
V.10.3.
VIII.
(acc.pl.)
6.2.
grisma m. summer.
-mas (nom.sg.)
S7ir-
embrace.,
|-pari
-mat
up towards.
upodgrhnan
mam
up'').
(pres.ind.act.
11.3-2;
sg.)
VI.i6.i,3.
VII. 11. i.
agrhya grd.
of.
(pres.iud.
pratigrhnati
III. 13.8.
grd.
hold
round.
II-5-i
16. 1.
parigrhltam
pass,
pp1
III.: 1.6.
acc.sg.f.)
glava m. nm.pr.
vas
(nom.sg.)
i. 12. 1,3.
GH
ghora m. nm.pr.
ras
(nom.sg.)
ghosa m.
noise.,
\/ghra smell.
III. 17.6.
tumult.,
1.2.2.
rani
sound.
sas (nom.pl.)
1 1 1.
19.3
a.
sonant.
(nom.jjl.)
II. 22. 5.
VIII. 1 2.4.
ghrana
(2t.),4.
ghosavant
ntas
jighrati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
n.
nose.
nam (nom.sg.)
12.4.
VIII.
ca
caksusya
ca (.ncl.conj. and.
VlII.i.3(4t.),4(2i.),6
2.2
I.i.5(4t.),8,io(4t.);
(2l.),4(2t.);
6.
3.3(3t.);
3(2l.),4
10.2.
i5.2(2t.);
8.4
24.i(2t.),
(inslr.du.)
3(4t.),4(4t.),5(4t.),6
acaksale
pi.)
ii.2(2t.)
IV.15.2.
i2.2(2t.)
13.2(21.)
VI.8.1,3,5.
i4.i(2t.);
15.5(21.)
10.1,9
i5.i(2t.);
19.2(31.); 20.2
21.2(31.) 23.2
17.1
(3t.);
caksus
n.
eye.
-(nom.-acc.sg.) I.2.4 7.
II. 7. 1 ;
n.i.
2(21.).
;
III. 13.
3.3; 8.3.
(3t-); 23.2(3t.)-
VI.2.3;
(2l.),2(2t.),3(2l.).
V.i.i(6t.),3(2t.),4(2t.);
(2t.);
VII. 24.2
VIII. 5.
26.2(21.).
17.10.
II. I. I.
V.I. 15(21.).
10.5(41.)
(3t.);
iiatjie.,
(pres.ind.mid.
1.3.2,6.
2.2(3t.);
shoxv.
call.
3.2;
see.,
proclaim.,
[-a
i9.i(2t.),3(4t.),
4(2t.).
IV.
16.5.
IV. 16.
3-
-rabhyam
4(2t.),5(2t.),S(2t.);
i6.i(2t.)
12.6(41.);
-rena (inslr.sg.)
I4(2t.),l6(2t.).
(4t.);
15.1(21.).
III.i2.i(3t.),6; i3.2(2t.),
15.4;
6.2(41.),
II.i.4(2t.);
i;
5-3
6(2t.);7.l(2t.),2(2l.),
S(5t-);7-6(3t.),7(3t-)'
S(3t.);
3-2(3t-);
(21.);
(2t.),3(2t.),4(2t.),5(2t.),
6(2t.),S;
6i
7-M
13;
IV.
18.2,5.
V.i.3,9(2l.),
13-2;
1S.2;
19.2. VIII.i3.4(2i.),5.
7.4.
VII.I.3; 2.i(iSl.),4;
3.
susa
(instr.sg.)
V.1.8,
VIII. 1 2.5.
10,11.
1(61.);
4.2(41.);
(221.);
8.1(31.);
lO.I
-susi (loc.sg.)
(21.);
ii.i(2t.);
14.1
(41.)
26.2(61.).
7.1
caksusya
a.
V.I 9.2.
agreeahle
to
candala
62
the
pleasant
eyes,
to
catuspad
caturvin9ativarsa
a.
tzvejt-
see.
yas
III.
(nom.sy;.in.)
sas
VI.
(nom.sg.m.)
1.2.
13.8.
ivith
a.
twenty-four syllables.
V.24.4.
-laya (dat.sg.)
f.
16.
i.
forty-
10.9.
turas
IV.
3.6.
n.
offour
-ram (nom.sg.)
hundred.
syllables.
11. 10,
-tas (acc.pl.f.)
catuskala
2,3-
III.9.1.
;
a.
VII.1.2;
(acc.sg.f.)
V.22.
[caturdaQa num.a.
four-
las (nom.sg.m.)
-lam
(acc.sg. m.)
7.4
8.4(2t.).
(2t.);
xuith
IV. 5.
6.4(2t.);
a.
fozir-footed;
or
four padas
verses.
tcent]i.~^
fourth.^
-tis
IV. 5.
catuspada
I.
o)ie-
fourth.
3(2t.);
7.1.
caturvingati
IV.4.5.
consisting- oj
four-sixteenths or
-thim
III. 16.
(nom.sg.f.)
3-
caturaksara
2.1
ra
f.
(nom.sg.)
III. 16.
i.
fourths.
cana~ s/car
III.
63
-met
pres.opt.act.sg.
also
cana adv.postp.
not,
ma
VI.
(imv'.act.sg.)
i3-2(3t.)(w.neg. and
interr.=n eg. indef.). camasa m. drinking
sel^ wooden czip.
II.13.2. 111.11.2,6. IV.
even
7iot
V.2.1; 3.5(21.);
9.3.
10.8.
VI.4.5
12.
1.
candra m. tnoon.
(nom.sg.)
candratva
VI.4.3.
quality of the
n.
moon, brightness.
vam
(nom.sg.)
(2t.)
13.1.
III.13.2.
4.1
6.4
11.20 I.
IV. 12. 1. V.
20.2(2t.).
masam
15.5.
masas
(acc.sg.
IV.
(abl.- gen.sg.
V.10.2.
VI.
-masi (loc.sg.)
v/cam
IV. 12.
V.20.2.
sif.
|-a
the month.
acamati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
2.7(4{.).
V.
1.6.
ranti (prcs.ppl.act.nom.
IV.4.2,4.
zuith.
acaran (prcs.ppl.act.nom.
sg.m.)
attejid,
f-pari
serve,
care for.
(pres.ppl.act.
nom.sg.m.)
VIIL8.4.
-ricacara
4-3-
I.
ret (pres.opt.act.sg.)
paricaran
V.io.2,4.
IV.15.5.
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
sg.f.)
1.
VIII. lo.i.
VII.ii.i.
VI.4.3.
candramas m. moon.
mas (nom.sg.)
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
III. 17. 3.
-ranti
-rat (abl.sg.)
V.2.8.
(acc.sg.)
carati
IV. 3.1
VIIL13.1.
7.3.
-sam
ves-
\/car
VIII.6.3.
VII.13.1.
ras
II.12.2.
18,2.
sg.)
VII.8.1.
(perf. ind.act.
IV.io.i.
-ryacarlt (aor.ind.act.sg.)
I V.10.2, 4.
again.
samcarantas
(pres.ppl.
act.nom.pl.) VIII.3.2.
carman
64
carman
caikitayana
cittavant
n. skin^ leather.
-mana
IV.
(instr.sg.)
or
reaso?i^
van (nom.sg.)
VII.5.
standing
sensible.
17.7.
mani
V.2.8.
(loc.sg.)
cakrayana m.nm.pr.
nas
I.io.i
(nom.sg.)
2.
;
cittatmaka
a.
the
belonging
eye.,
kani
VIII.
consider.,
meeting
think.,
sg.caus.)
which
striven
after.,
stood;
n.
see.
16.2,4,6.
attention.,
rea-
a.
nom.-acc.sg.n.
long.,
and
VII. 5.
(abl.sg.n.)
3(2t.); 6.1.
-tasya (gen.sg.n.)
5-3-
loc.sg. n.)
tan (acc.pl.m.)
3-
VII. 5. 2,
VII. 5.
lasting;
n. as
nom.-acc.sg.n.
VI. 14.2.
and; if. See ca
id.
1.10.9,10,11
III. 16.
11.4,5,6,7,8,9.
2,4,6.
VII.
VII.
V.3.7.
V.2.I.
ram
son.
VII.
15.2.
under- cira
understanding.,
te
in at-
5.2.
having
also (w.
pres.ind.mid. cid cncl.pcl. even.,
III.
interr.= indef.).
VII. 5. 1.
citta pass.ppl.,
-tat
a.
filace
-nani (nom.pl.n.)
tmderstand.
cetayate
VII.
tention or reason.
reflect.,
as
5.2.
mid.
at-
reaso7z
(nom.pl.n.)
cittaikayana
12.4.
having
or
7iature.
to
visible.
sas (nom.sg.m.)
tam
a.
tentio7i
II. I.
Caksusa
having under-
a.
I.2,4(2t.).
caikitayana m.nm.pr.
-nas (nom.sg.) I.S.i.
-nam
6.
acc.sg.
1-8.3,
A/chad s/jan
CH
\/chad cover.
acchadayaii
1.
chandas
n.
4. 2.
chandogya a. derivedfrom
Chandoga;
n.
1.4,2.
sg.)
\/jaks latigh.
III.13.6.
act. sg.)
pres.ppl.act.nom.
sg.m.)
jagat
a.
VIII. 1 2.3.
vwvittg^ alive ;
cert,
2.4.
V.10.6.
VI. 2, 3.
f.
VI.2.2.
-yeran (pres.opt.mid.pl.)
III. 16.5.
-yasva (imv.mid.sg.) V.
V.2.3.
(nom.sg. f.)
instr.
hips, pudeizda,'
as adv. -prep, behind.
II. 24.
(instr.sg.)
pass.sg.,
II. 3.
Wh.Gr.
1
12.
761.
15.
10.8.
-yanianam
(pres.ppl.
b)
VI.
-nena
V.9.1.
VII. 12. 1,
-yeta (pres.opt.mid.sg.)
sylL).
-ti
VI.7.1.
-yante (pres.ind.inid.pl.)
lil.i7-3-
-sat
in
vicchetsyate (ut.ind.mid.
(pres.ind.
his
pieces.
1. 4. 2.
(nom.sg.)
jaksiti
n.
teaching.^
v'chid ctit or tear off".
cut or tear
(-vi
qt^ality or
VIII. 10.
3,4.
1.3. 10.
-dasa (instr.sg.)
1.
3. 10.
dobhis
1.
4. 3.
(instr.pl.)
vam
in
(pres.ind.
act.pl.caus.)
holy song.
chandastva
tear
or
vicchayayanti
delight^ ivish^
-(acc.sg.)
cut
(-vl
pieces.
(impf.ind.
act.pl.caus.)
65
1.
3-
ajayata
(impf.ind. mid.
V.9.2.
66
jana
jihva
VIII. 1.4;
-(nom.sg.)
tined for.
4.1.
abhijayate (pres.ind.niid.
VIII.
-ray a (instr.sg.)
VII. 12. 1.
sg.)
hP^a
prajayate
cast-off skin
n.
spring jarayu
{J^^gf^^^i
of
egg
(prep.ind.mid.
rion.
-yeya (pres.opt.mid.sg.)
-tam (nom.sg.n.)
VI.2.4.
pi.)
jana m.nm.pr.
-nas (nom.sg.)
-nam
(acc.sg.)
janapada m.
16.5.
W15.1.
-de
-las
V.11.5.
le
.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
tvife.
1.
10.7.
(instr.sg.)
-yayas (gen.sg.)
IV.4.1.
(acc.sg.)
f
xvearing
old age.
jayati
II. 10.6.
II. 10.6.
out.,
decay
10.5.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
1.9.2.
(nom.sg.)
I.io.i.
1.
IV.4.2,4.
-lam (acc.sg.)
jaya m. victory.
yas
IV.
10.2.
2.4;
yaya
jabala f.nm.pr.
-(nom.sg.)
jaya
IV. 10. 1,
(loc.sg.)
f.
IV.4.1,
V.2.3.
-(nom.sg.)
V.2.6.
IV. 1.2.
(nom.sg.)
2,4.
prayers),
jara
2.1,3.
-tes (gen.sg.)
janitr m. progenitor.
-ta (nom.sg.)
IV. 3. 7.
iv
h
s
er
i
es p
N/jap
p
(
yam
IV.i.i,
(nom.sg.)
5;
(loc.sg.)
japati
-tis
district^ conn-
try^ people.
-dam
III.
jesyantas
^
II.7.3
jihva
f.
10.5.
8.4.
ppl.act.
VIII. 8. 5.
(fut.
tongue.
\/jiv-
\/jiV
VI.
-jam (nom.sg.n.)
\.J.i.
(nom.sg'.)
67
./jna
/ive.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
jivati
12.2;
II.11.2;
19.2
30.3.
III.
1.3;
13.3;
16.7.
IV.
13.2.
V.9.3.
vanti
(prcs.ind.act.pl.)
-nam
^
VII.9.1.
-van
(pres.ppl.act.nom.
VI.ii.i(3t.).
sg.)
ajivat
(impf.ind.act.sg.)
jivapeta
zuith life
a.
axuaVy lifeless.
-tarn (nom.sg.n.)
visyam
juhu
1.
9.
gone
VI.
f.
{Jo7tgtic ; tongtie of
Agni^ flame ;
sacrifi-
cial
eastern
ladle');
side of theivorld-souVs
case.
-bus (nom.sg.)
III.16.7.
sg.)
(nom.sg.n.)
11.3.
pres.opt.act.sg.
n.
vivifying ;
life.
I.I 1.9,
vet
a.
jivana
13.3;
(cond.ind.act.
1.10.4.
v/jr decay ^
jiryati
jivitum (m.acc.sg. as
inf.)
V. 1,8,9,10,11.
grow
III. 15. 2.
old.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
III. 15.
1.
VIII. 1. 5.
jaivali m.nm.pr.
lis
I.S.1,2,8.
(nom.sg.)
upaji vanti
(pres.ind.act.
III.6.1 ; 7.1 ; S.I ;
pi.)
9.1
jiva
a.
lo.i.
VIII. 1. 5.
living;
m.
life-,
spirit^ self.
vas
(notn.sg.)
2,3;
janasi
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
VI.i5.i(3t.).
nati
pres.ind.act.sg.
VI.15.1,2.
(instr.sg.)
I
VI. 3.
I.I.
VIII.6.
4(2t.).
VI.ii.
2,3-
vena
VIII.6.4;
1.1,2.
-nani (pres.subj.act.sg.)
III. 14. 1,
-nlyat
V.2.9.
pres.opt.act.sg.
68
jnatr
jiiapayate
sg.caus,
|-anii
(pres.ind.mid.
11.
|-a
(pres.ind.act.
notice/
command.
ajuapayam
VI.7.6(2t.)
vijiiasyasi
atte7id to^
caus.
agree; mid.
answer.,
(perf.ind.mid.
|-vi
13.1;
VIII.6.3; 7.1,3;
I.I
).
;
nithas
17.
;
23.1.
VII.2.i(2t.).
imv.act.sg. caus.
;
6.5
8.7
9.4
)
;
16.3.
vyajiiapayisyata
(cond.
ind. mid.
sg.caus.) VII.
2.1.
jnatr m. knoiver.
-ta (nom.sg.) VIII. 5.1.
man.
-niyus (pres.opt.act.pl.)
VII. 13.1(21.).
-nihi (imv.act.sg.)
3.4; 4.7;
25.2.
20.1
(pres.ind.act.du.)
VIII.8.1.
sg.)
13.6.
nan
VI.5.4
17.1;
24.i(2t.
22.1
19.
H-3; 15-3;
(pres.ind.act, sg.) I.
III. 13.8.
2.9.
VII.7.
i8.i(3t.);
VII. 16. 1
;
sg.caus.)
yatu
IV.io.5(3t.).
-iiati
i(2t.);
vijiiapayati (pres.ind.act.
18.
21.
IV.i.8;9.2; 14.3.
underdiscern.,
sg.)
(pres.ind.mid.
sg.dcs.)
confess.
pratijajiie
i6.3(2t.).
fut.ind.act.
VI.i.3,4,5,6.
n.)
vijijnase
recognize.,
l-prati
VL7.4.
sg.)
-atam (pass.ppl.nom.sg.
(caus.vbl.f.
V.3.7.
acc.sg.)
VII. 26.1.
sg.)
vijajiiau (perf.ind.act.sg.)
1. 1.8.
sg.)
-natas (pres.ppl.act.gen.
3. 1.
permit.
anujanati
jnanavant
(nom.pl.)
VI.
8.i,3(2t.),5.
17.1
VI.
15.1.
-tibhis (instr.pl.)
(pres.ppl.act.nom.
VII. 15.4;
tayas
VIII.
12.3.
jnanavant a. i?ttenigent^
wise; -where wisdom is.
vatas (acc.pl.) VII. 7.
2.
jyayans
a.
jyayans
69
a.
-man
yan (nom.sg.m.)
1.
9.1.
(nom.sg.u.)
having light.
IV. 7.
(nom.sg.)
34(3t-)-
-matas
jyotis
n.
IV. 7.4.
(acc.pl.)
light.
III. 13.7
-(nom. -acc.sg.)
0*
a.
jyestha
supl. principal.,
oldest.
best.,
i(3t.)
-tham
V.I.
V.2.4.
n. pre'efninencc.,
primogeniture.
yam
16.2
19.2
12.2;
VIII.3.4; 12.2,3.
-isa (instr.sg.)
III.1S.3,
II.
20.2.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
II.12.1.
-latas
(pres.ppl.act.gen.
hpra
1.2;
14.2;
15.
17.2
jvalati
sg.)
V.2.6.
(acc.sg.)
12.2;
IV.i.
-thaya (dat.sg.)
jyaisthya
i7.7(4t-)-
2.6.
(acc.sg.n.)
4,5.
(2t.);
2.
thas (nom.sg.m.)
ta-
18.2
IV. 1
1.2
III.13.S.
jiite.
prajvalit (aor.ind.act.sg.)
VI.7.6.
j^rajvalayet (pres.opt.act.
13.2.
VI. 7. 5.
sg.caus.)
N
nya m.nm.pr. of
a cert. sea.
a.,
that
he., she.,
yam
(acc.sg.)
4-
instr.
fore^
2.
w.pron. of
pers.,
pron.)
3.
n.
or
w. other
as adv.
therefore^
adv. there-
there., tJien.,
(used
this.,
VIII, cj.
as
fore.
sas
(nom.sg.m.)
1. 1.3
2.8(2t.),i3(2t.); .3.3
ta-
70
4.5;
(3t-)'4.i2;
5.1
6.7,8;
(3t),5(2t.);
8.2,3;
6,7(2t.);
7.
9.2
(2t),4; io.2,5,6(2t.),8;
1
1.2.
II.1.4; 3.1(31.);
8.1 (3t.),
4.i(4t.);
9-2,3,4.5'6'7;
(St-);
11.2;
i2.i(4t.),2;
13.
14.2;
i(4t.),2;
16.2;
(4t.),2:
18.2 ; 19.2
20.2
15.1
17.2;
21.
i(3t-)'2,4; 22.3,4(21);
24-2,357^iK2t-)- III-6^
3(2t.)4;
7-3(2t.):4;
3(2t.).4;
9-3(2t.)54;
i2.7,8(2t.),
io.3(2t.),4;
9;
i3-i(3t.)'2(2t.),3
(2t.),4(2t.),5(3t.),6;
i5.i,2(2t.),4;
14.1;
7.1,
18.3,4,5,6;
19.
i6.2,4,6,7(2t.)
6(2t.);
2(2t.),3,4.
V.I.
1,
5;
5-3;
8.1,4;
4.2,3,4(2t.),
6.1,4;
io.i,3(2t.),5;
II.l(2t.),2;
2;
7-14;
I2.l(2t.),
I3.i(2t.),2;
(2t.),5(2t.);
16.2,3
17.2,3.
24.1.
VI. 1. 2,4,6; 5
(2t.)
7.
9.4
8.2,6,7;
2(2t.),4;
io.i,3(2t.); II.
i,3(2t.);
13.
i2.3(2t.);
i'3(2t.); i4-i52,3(2t.);
i6.i(3t.),2
i5-3(2t.);
VII.1.2,
(2t.),3(2t.).
2.2;
3(2t.),5;
3.1,2;
4-2,3(2t); 5-3(2t.);
6.
2; 7--(2t.); S.1,2; 9.
2(2t.)
(2t.);
10.2;
(2t.)
5;
.2
24.
3
25.1(71.),
26.2.
2.1,10;
6.4,5(2t.);
(3t.);
i2.2(2t.); 13.2;
i(2t.);
VIII. 1. 3,
4.1;
3.3;
7-i(3t-)'3
8.4; 9.2(2t.),3;
^o-i(3t-)'3(3t.)'4;
II-
13.3
i(2t.),2(2t.),3;
(3t.),4(4t.),5(2t.),6;
i4.i(2t.);
(2t.),5,6(2t.),7,8(2t.);
3.3,6(3t.)
2,3; 6.i,2,3(2t.),4;
tat
15.1.
(nom.-acc.sg-.n.)
5,6,8(2t.);
3.4,8,10;
I.i.
2.1,4,5,6;
4.2,4,5(2t.)
6.l(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.),4
(2t.),5(2t.),6(2t.);
7.
I(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.),4
V.I.7,12; 2.1,2,6(2t.),
(4t.).5(6t.),6;
^; 3-4(2t.),5,6(3t.),
7; S.I ; 9.1,2; 10.
II.i.i(3t.),2(3t.),3(2t.);
10;
1-30;
i^-i
^9-
12.1,3.
8(2t.);
10.1,2,3,4,5
ta-
71
(2t.);
II. 2;
13.1,2;
I3.l(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.);
13.1,2;
14.2;
15.1,2;
H-3(2t.);
16.2;
18.2;
17.2;
19.
2; 20.2; 2i.i,3,4(3t.);
3-3(3t-);
3(3t-);
(3t-);
5-3(3t-);
(2t.);
7.1;
lo.i
5;
2;
6.1
13.2;
2t.
9.
),
12.4(2t.),5,7(2t.),
I3-U2t.)2( 2t.),
3.4(2t.),5,7,S; 14.
9;
i;
15.1,4,6,7(21.); 16.
I(2t.),3(2t.),5(2t.),
7;
1S.2;
i7--'3o'<^;
4.3
8.1;
ii.i,4(
2.
6.
2.
III.i.4(3t.);
23.4.
i5-3(2t.);
VII.1.5;
i6.3(3t-)'
IV. 1.2
12.2;
ii.i(4t.),2;
14.2;
23.1
3.2(2t.),
(2t.),2,3,6;
4-2;
5(3t-);
5-U2t.)
6.2,3,
2(2t.),3(5t.),4;
6;
8.1;
7.2;
10.1,3;
12.1,2;
11.1,3;
(2t.);
24.
VIII. 1. 1
26.2.
i(3t.);
14.1
15.1.
sa (nom.sg.f.)
1.3.3,4;
(3t.),4(2t.),5,6(2t.),
7;
2(2t.),3(2t.),5;
i9-i(5t-)'-'3-
2.l(2t.),3(2t.);
7,8;
io.5(3t.);
15-10
9(2t.).
3.
14.3;
i7-4(2t.).5A75
V. 1.9,10,11, 13
(2t.),i4(2t.)
3.1,3,7,9;
19. 1
21.2 ; 22.
10.1,2,4,6,7,8;
(2t.),2
20.2
13.3;
IV.3.8; 4.
V.I. 8
2(2t. ),4(2t.).
VI.3.2,3; 5.3;
(2t.).
i9.2(2t.).
3.1,
2; 23.2; 24.i,3,4(2t.).
VI.1.7;
10.2,7
2.i,3(5t.),4;
3.4; 4.i(3t.),2(3t.),3
24.3.
(3t-).4(3t.)o'6(4t.),7
4,6;
(2t.);
3;
5.i(3t.),2(3t.),
6.1,2;
7.6;
8.2,3
II. 22. 3
12.2.
III. 15.4;
19.3.
V.I. 3,7,8;
2.i,34;3-6;4-4>5(2t.);
6.2
7.2
8.2
11.2;
9.2
1,2,3;
2; 14.1. V.I. 12
i2.3(2t.)
10.
12.2; 13.
(3t.),5(3t.),6,7(2t.)
9-34(2t.); io.2,3(2t.)
ii.3(2t.);
16.2,
3.1,4,
n. 2
6,7(2t.);9-2; 10.4;
ta-
72
VI.
(2t.),4(2t.),6(2t.).
7-3'4(2t.),5
i-i53(2t.);
12.2;
2,q
14. 1.
13.1,2;
3-M
4;
5-1
10.3;
II. 2;
1. 2. 3
4.2;
10.9,
11.4,5,6,7,8,9.
IL23.3.
V.3.6;
21. 1
VII. 4. 1
I.
19.
22.1
1.
IV.
5-2; 6.3;
10.2,4;
v.3.6,7.
V11.5.
14.3.
2
4;
26.2. VIII.9.3
10.
IV.2.5;
6.7,8
111.1.1,2,3;
16.1
18.2
VI.5.1,3;
2-1,2,3,4,5,6,7,8,9,10;
(instr.sg.f.)
1. 2.
3.
IV.3.8.VI.7.3,6.Vin.
6.6.
tasmat (abl.sg.)
3.2;
19.2
22.2
8.4,6;
15.1;
VIL25.2;
23.2
26.1.
5.1
20.2
24.2.
14.2
16.1,2.
VIII.
3-3,4(loc.sg-.)
III. 15.
1.
II.9.2.
V. 2.9(21.)
2;
1.2.2,3,
(2t. );
tasmin
3-5-
taya
4.
IV.
V.4.1
12.
VII.i.i.
2.2;
19.1,3.
6. 1.
21.2
.3,5.
7.
II.9.2.
7.5.
2-2,4,5,6,9(2t.),io, II,
III.
17.3.
7.1
VI. 7.
VIII.
i.i
6.1,2;
V.10.8.
VIII.3.3,
8.1,2.
10.
II.9.l(2t.).
12.
15.1;
lo.i
13.1.
V.4.2; 5.2;
I.2.11.
II. 2.
14.1;
II-3-
9.1
(2t.);
23.3.
12.2.
11.24.6,10,15,16.
3-5AS;
10.8
13.1;
6.1
5.1.
tasmai (dat.sg.)
2-5;
23.
3.7
3.
10,11;
20.1
i;
I2.6(2t.).
tarn (acc.sg.f.)
9(2t.),ii
V.2.2
9.2;
7-i2,3(2t.);
11.9.2,3,
III. 17.5.
4,5,6,7.8.
IV. 3. 8 ; 16.1
17.10.
6.3,
5-
6.i,2,3,4,5,8(2t.);
7-^2,3,4,6,8.
VILi.i,3(2t.); 15.4;
26.2(2t.). VIII. 1. 2,4,
5(2t.);
3-2,34(3t-);
4,5'6;
tan
10.5.
8.
VIII. 1. 1.
(nom.-acc.du.m.)
I.i.
tatas tatha
6;
te
7.2,3(41.); S.i(3t.),2
12.3.
7'^;
io-3'5'7;
II.9.8; 23.1. IV. [5. 5.
(3t-)'3(2t.)4-
V.I. 7;
7.5.
III.
(nom.-acc.du.n.)
19.
VIII. 14.1.
1.
2.
V.10.9,
(instr.pl.)
10.
lo.ii;
4.
21.3;
9.
5.
S.i;
7.6(2t.);
3;
I2.4(2t.).
III.4-2
II-9-2,355A7-
II.
V.11.3,
23.3,4.
VIII.S.4.
tesam
1.6.8;
(gen.pl.)
VII.4.3; 25.3.
5.4(3t.)
11.1,2,6,7.
3,6,7(2t.);
VI.1.7;
10.2.
9.2,3;
VII.6.i(3t.);
(2t.)
VIII. 3. 1
25.2.
6.2(2t.)
7.2
13.1
;
1.
tani(nom.-acc.pl.n.)
3.
10.8.
VII.4.2
VIII.3.5;
5.2.
i.2(3t.);
III.
2.i(2t.);
i(2t.);
4.i(2t.);
(2t.);
17.1,4;
3.
5.1
4.3(2t.);
IV.17.2. VI.3.3,4;
VIII.6.6.
adv.
tatas
III. 15.
thence^
12.6;
i,6(2t.);
thercIII.
II. 10.2.
1.
16.2,4,
6.
IV.6.1 ;7.i
17.6.
14. 1.
8.1.
VI.8.3,5; 9.2;
V.2.9.
lo.i
I.
III. 1 1.2;
10.8.
VII. 1.5
19.2.
IV.4.5(2t.); 6.1;
7.1
10.
VI.2.4(2t.);
VIII.6.1.
I.4.3
7.2
1
7.
1.3
14.3.
l(2t.).
5.2.
VIII.
13.6.
tasam (gen.pl.f.)
4.3;
1.3.
tas (nom.-acc.pl.f.)
3.1
i.6(3t.);
forc.
8.4.
VI.3.1.
V.3.5.
17.1.
2.
IV.
III.5.4(2t.).
7.6.
8.1.
11.4,7
tebhyas (dat.-abl.pl.)
I.2.3
(nom.pl.m.)
3;
10.1,3;
8. 1,
(2t.);
tais
73
tatha adv.
8.3
;
;
9.2 ; 10.
13.3 ; 13.2 ;
VIII. 12. 3.
so,
thus; yes;
tad
74
also.
\/tap
1,8.2; 9.4(21.);
4;
10-3;
1-3;
12.3;
H-3
13-1.2,3;
warm^ blaze
be
v/tap
heat ^
beshine^
y'
in
be
do penance.
fain.,
tapati
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
III.i8.3(2t.),4
1.3.1.
(2t.),5(2t.),6(2t.).
^
that case.
VI. 8.1.
VIII.6.3(2t.).
v/tan, ta stretch (tr. and
spread
over.,
reach
to.
atatas
m.)
tarn
pra
n.)
6. 1,
pan tarn
(pres.ppl.act.
II. 14.2.
acc.sg.m.)
-ptas
(pass.ppl.nom.sg.
m.)
-ptam
intr.).
|-a
VI.
-pata (imv.act.pl.)
16.3.
m.
IV. 10.2,4.
(pass.ppl.acc.sg.
VI. 16.1,2.
-pyamanayas
(pass.pjol.nom.sg.
VIII.6.2.
(pass.ppl.nom.sg.
IV.1.2.
extend.
|-
(pres.ppl.
IV.
I7-3-
nanam
(pres.ppl.pass.
IV. 17. 1, 2.
gen.pl.)
pratayante(pres.ind.pass.
pi. ; so BR., but see
abhitapati
abhyatapat (impf.ind.act.
\/tay).
extend (weft or
\-\'i
line)
fice,
w. weft).
(pres.ind.act.
VII. II. I.
II.23.3(
sg.)
2t.
),4.
IV.17.1,2,3.
-pan
(impf.ind.act.pl.)
vitatam (pass.ppl.acc.sg.
1.
10.7.
m.)
|-sam make
5.2.
abhitaptasya
continu-
ous.
sarhtanuta
sg.)
gen.sg.)
(pass.ppl.
III.
1.
3; 2.2;
(imv.act.pl.)
111.16.2,4,6.
tapas
-tebhyas
(pass.ppl.abl.
\-
tcnwell.
suffer^ become
upatapasi
pet
drk
pres.opt.act.sg.
so great, so many,
lasting so long ; n.acc.
as adv. so far, so long.
upon.
van (nom.sg.m.)
heat; penance;
4(
III.
II. 23. 2.
ti-
1.3-1.
-(acc.sg.)
2t.
7.
S.4(2t.) ;9.4
io.4(3t.).
VI. 14.3;
1.5.
I.
III.6.4;
1.3.
)
(3t.);
darkness.
n.
9.3;
V.io.i.
17.4.
III.
VIII. 1. 3.
13.6.
asceticism.
tamas
a.
VII.ii.i.
-(nom.sg.)
VIII.6.2(2t.).
pi.)
nitapati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
tapas
V.34.1.
(-pra extend.
tavant
111.16.2,4,6.
n.
(acc.sg.n.)
pratayante (pres.ind.mid.
(pres.ind.act.
III. 16.7.
sg.)
75
v/tay stretch.
11.23.3,4.
pi.)
tirtha
VIII.6.4,5.
of
syl.
2nd
V.
15.
1.
sattiya.
-asas (abl.-gen.sg.) 1. 3.
VIII.3.5.
VII.36. tira^cinavan^a m. crossI.
III.17.7.
beajn; bee- hive.
2.
at
adv.
tarhi
that
ti?}te;
1.3.
I.
-pam
(acc.sg.)
adv.
V.10.9.
from
that.,
IV.4.2.
A".
3-5a.
as adv.
hori-
instr.pl. f.
-sas (nom.pl.)
V.10.6.
dear.
tadr^
III.i.i.
oblique,
VII.II.I.
and
m. father, reverend,
-(voc.sg.)
a.
tira^cibhis
tiryanc
zontal.
II. 24.2.
tasmat
-fas (nom.sg.)
or
-thebhyas
1
5.
VIII.
(abl.pl.)
-tayas
8.1
1.
8; ii.3(2t.).
IV.4.3,4;
14.3;
2
VI. 1. 7
18.
1
19.
23.1
9.3; io.2,4(2t.)
tu-
yas
VIII.
-yam
pron.st.2pers.,
1.3.
see
tvam.
tura
a.
-yasyam
(acc.sg.n.)
V.2.7.
1. 10.
silently.
1.
VIII.
thiz-d or
n.
libation
(of
Soma),
-nam
(nom.-acc.sg.)
II.
24.1,16. 111.16.4,5(21.),
tarati
6.
(prcs.ind.act.sg.)
-nasya (gen.sg.)
tas
pres.ind.act.du.
VIII.4.1.
tirtva grd. VIII.4.2(2t.).
i
v act.sg
(
taray atu
caus.)
VII.1.3.
n. grass.,
grass-blade.
VI. 7. 5.
(insti-.pl.)
trnavanaspati
and
II. 24.
II.
VII.1.3.
-nais
V.21.1.
(loc.sg.f.)
everting
trna
(acc.sg.f.)
VI. II. 2.
wealthy, trtiyasavana
strong-.,
tusnim adv.
1
III.
(nom.sg.n.)
V.10.8.
5-3-
cofious.
-ram
II.
(nom.sg.m.)
8.1.
11.32.2.
(acc.sg.)
third.
23.2.
-yam
iva-
num. a.
21.
23.1.
kani
8.6.
and
n. p-^^ss
ter.
17.1;
20.1
7.1.
2.2
4.7;
3.4;
(2t.);
VII.i6.i(2t.)
VII. 2. 1
(acc.pl.)
17, trtiya
VII.
(nom.pl.)
lo.i.
trnodaka
1.
13.2.;
16.2;
15.2;
18.1.
-tin
10.5;
9.2;
V.12.2;
14.1,3.
tu- \/trp
76
trees.
m grass
.
v/trd
split.,
bore.
connect
|-sam
hole., fasten
by
together.
sariitrnna (pass.ppl.nom.
II. 23.4.
sg.f.)
-nani
n.)
s/trp
be
(pass.ppl.nom.pl.
II.33.4.
satisfied.,
content.
become
traya
trpti
-sa (instr.sg.)
trpyati (prcs.ind.act.sg.)
20.3
pres.ppl.act.loc.
20.
V. 19.2(31.);
2i.2(2t.); 22.
2(3t.);
21.
2(2t.)
(pres.ppl.act.
f.
20.2
21,2
V.19.2
22.2
23.
man
a. sated., satisjied.
VII.
(nom.sg.m.)
10.2.
tejas
n.
ofJlaine.,Jire^ vigor.
III. 1.3;
-(nom. -acc.sg.)
2.2;
3.2;
VI.2.3(2t.);
13.1.
3;
5.
8.4,5(2t.),6(2t.);
15.1,2,
7.1;
26.1.
VII. 2.1
4.2
ii.i(4t.),3(2t);
bright.,
II. 14.
III.13.1. VII.11.2.
a.
tejomaya
consisting oj
Jlame., shining.
VI.5.4
-yl (nom.sg.f.)
tena
6.5; 7.6.
adv. i?i
that -way,
see
ta-.
therefore/
n. tin.
IV. 17. 7.
-puna (instr.sg.) IV. 17.
-(acc.sg.)
7-
triple/ n. triad
three
Vedas).
(the
5.2; traya
4.2;
sharp.,
strong.
-vi (nom.sg.m.)
trapu
sharpness., point
a.
tejasvin
2.
trptimant
VII. 11.
2.
2.
satiety^ satisfaction.
-tim (acc.sg.)
possessing
V.20.2.
loc.pl. f.)
trpti
a.
tejasvant
(pres.ppl.act.
loc.sg.f.) V.19.2;
22.2.
;
-yantisu
-vatas (acc.pl.)
2(3t-); 23.2(31.).
yantyam
6.4.
V.20.2.
sg.)
VI.
13. 1,
VII.ii.2(3t.)
-si (loc.sg.) VI.8.6; 15.
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
III.6.1 ; 7.1 ; 8.1 ; 9.1 ;
23.
4-152,3,456;
2.3;
22.i,2(5t.); 23.1,2(41.).
-yati
V.19.2;
22.2
-sas (abl.-gen.sg.)
-yanti
lo.i.
21.2
20.
2i.i,2(5t.);
i,2(4t.);
77
a.
-yam
(acc.sg.n.)
III. 17.
6.
yl
(nom.sg.f.)
2I-I
23.3.
1. 1.9.
II.
trayodaga
78
yim
1.
(acc.sg.f.)
IV.i
yyas
4. 2.
I-6-
(gen.sg.f.)
IV. 17.
num. a.
thh--
tvam
-(nom.sg.f.) VI. 3.4(21.)
8.
(2t.),4(2t.).
trayoda^a
tristubh
tecuth.
4X1
9as (nom.sg.m.)
[trayOvinQa num. a.
1.
13.3.
tzve/ity-
third.^
trayate
n. protection, help.
ed
II. 21.
trini
16.3.
(2t.).
II. 2 1.3
A^I.3.1; 4-15^53.
VIII.3.5.
4.
tisras (nom.-acc.f.)
17.2.
I\".
VI.3.2,3,4; ^.7;
tribhis
(instr.)
II. 10.3
three-footed; m.
three-quarters.
-pat
(nom.sg.m.)
12.6.
trivrt
tvac
a. tJi
III.
see).
2
-(nom.sg.)
1.5.2 (2t.),4
IV.i.8;4.2(3t.),
V.I.I2,13(2t.),
4(2t.).
H(2t.);
12.1
3-5'7;
VI-
(3t.); i7.i(3t-)-
8.7;
reefold.
II. 10.
l(2t.),3(2t.),4.
f. skin.
(2t.).
(2t.).
complex
syllables.
ram (nom.sg.n.)
tvam
8.6.
tripad
syllables ^ n. a
23.1.
(nom.n.)
having three
a.
of three
1.8. 1.
III.
(nom.sg.n.)
tryaksara
three.
(nom.m.)
trayas
in or connect-
a.
bham
sylL).
(pres.ind.mid.-
tri
f.
1
traistubha
trana
4.7(21.); 8.6(2t.).
-tarn (acc.sg.f.)
VI. 3. 3
12.3;
9.4;
1.3;
14.3;
15.
10.3;
13.3;
-tha darganiya
4oA7'S,9-
3; 16.3. VILi5.2(6t.).
tvam
4.
IV.4.2,
(acc.sg.)
(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.).
2.6;
I-S.3,
II.22.3,4(2t.)
24.
2.
IV.1.2;
4,8,12,13.
IV.5.2
V.14.1.
6,S.
79
7.3,6.
VII. 1. 1.
tava
10.4;
2.
vas
8.6(3t.),8
5.2,4;
7.9;
(3t.);
10.9,10,11
II.
VI.
VIII.
IV. 2. 3.
(gen.sg.)
yuyam
I.
H-'
V.
11.3.
V.3.6; 12.1;
te (encl.dat.-gen.sg.
14.2;
15.2;
16.2; 17.2.
9.3;
VII.15.
V.3.1,4.
12.2;
3.5;
13.1.
(nom.jDl.) V.18.1.
cncl.acc.-gen.pl.
V.i.7(2t.);
11.7.
TH
-tha 3rd
syl. of udgitha.
1.3.6,7(31.).
D
danga m. biting ; gadfly.
-9as (nom.sg.)
VI.9.3
-nau
10.2.
daksina
able:
a.
i-ischt-
hand^ southern.
-nas
(nom.sg.m.)
na (nom.sg.f.)
III. 15.
IV.5.2.
-nas (nom.pl.m.-f.)
2.i(2t.);
daksinatas
the
III.7.4;
4.
III.
17.4.
a.(\\.froin or
rio-ht
or
datta n.
(loc.sg.)
IV. 17.5.
gift., liberality.
-tarn (nom.sg.)
III.
13.2.
'2.
daksinagni m. right-hand
or southern altar-Jire.
oii
south.
8.4; 9.4;
10.
VII. 25.1(21.), 2.
V.10.3.
VI.
6.1.
yam
(acc.sg.n.)
1.
3.4.
So
(iaa
v/da
daga num.
ten. IV.3.8(2t.).
26.3,
V.9.1. VII.9.1
dchi (imv.act.sg, )
I. to.
[dagama num. a.
\/dah burn,
dahct (pres.opt.act.s<^.)
VI.7-3,5-
hyate
(pres.ind.pass.
pradhaksit
(unaug.aor.
IV. 1.2.
burn against^
ind.act.sg.)
burn.
pratidhaksyati
act.sg.)
(fut.ind.
II. 23.4.
gether
to-
cofnpletely.
vyatisamdahet (pres.opt.
VII. 15.3.
act.sg.)
dahara
a.
VIII.
A" II I.
1.1,2.
VII.i5.i(2t.).
pres. subj. act.sg.
II.22.5.
(pres.opt.act.sg.)
I.II.3(2t.).
-dyat
-dus
perf.ind.act.pl.
IV.3.S.
dasyami (fut.ind.act.sg.)
V.I i.5(2t.).
dattam (pass.ppl.nom.sg.
IV.3.6.
n.)
|-a
receive^ seize^
get
possession of.
adadate
(pres.ind.mid.
Ill, 16.5.
pi.)
attas (pass.ppl.nom.sg.)
VIII.12.1.
-tam
(pass.ppl.nom.sg.
VIII.12.1.
-tas (pass.ppl.nom.pl.m.)
II. 9.4.
adaya grd.
IV.
2.1,3-
dyas
(^^crf.ind.act-du.)
VIII.I2.6.
1.1,2.
ram (nom.sg.n.)
3-7-
dadatus
n.)
small., fine.
-ras (nom.sg.m.)
-dani
IV.
IV.3.5.
VI. 16.1, 2.
sg.)
burn
[-pra
up^ destroy.
f-prati
3-
datta (imv.act.pl.)
tenth.^
(pres.opt.act.sg.)
III.11.6.
appropriate^
|-abhya
put on J embrace.
abhy attas
(pass.ppl.
nom.sg.,
etnbracing^
111.14.2,4.
_ 4-vya
(mukham)
1.2.9.
\/du
dana
in-
surrender^
[-pari
trust.
paridadani (pres.subj.act.
pradadau
di9am
n. giving.^ liberality.
II.23.1.
IV. 12. 1.
1. 2.
yas (nom.sg.)
13;
ya (voc.sg.)
1.8.3,6.
bear
ivill
(pres.ind.act.
1.2.8.
dasabharya
n.
slaves
and
wives.
-yam
acc.sg.
VII.
i.
female
(instr.pl.)
digam (gen.pl.)
diksu
(loc.pl.)
n.
20.2
III.
III. 15.
IV. 3.8.
appointed place,
destiny.
-tarn (acc.sg.)
consecrate
v/dlks
V.9.2.
oneself
(for performance of a
ceremony, esp. for of-
fering of Soma),
diksitva grd.
V.2.4.
diksa
24.2.
dasi
digbhis
dista
ill
towards.
sg.)
V.6.1
V.20.2.
1.8.6.
ill ivill.
abhidasati
f.
preparation, con-
secration.
slave.
sas
V.13.2.
(nom.pl.) III. 1 7.1.
see
X^dip blaze, shine.
div,
dyo.
diviksit a. dwelling in tne
dipyate (pres.ind.mid.sg.)
-(nom.sg.)
skv.
-sidbhyas
24.14
18.2.
2(2t.).
12.1,3.
(acc.sg.)
f-abhi
18.6.
dalbhya m.nm.pr.
\/das bear
14.
(2t.).
IV. 17.7(21.).
-(acc.sg.)
III. 15.
21.4.
n. xvood.
yam
II. 17.1
-gas (nom.pl.)
III. 17.4,
8.1
I.3.11
VI.8.2(4t.)
2(2t.).
nam (nom.sg.)
daru
direction^
(acc.sg.)
(2t.).
(perf.ind.act,
L10.3.
sg.)
regiojz.,
cardinal point.
dik (nom.sg.)
III. 15. 2.
IV.5.2(4t.).
dana
f.
di^
II.22.5.
sg.)
8i
III.13.7.
(dat.pl.)
II.
x'^du,
du
burn
intr. ), afflict.
(tr.
and
duhkhata
S2
(-
yeta
V.24.3.
f.
VII. 26.
2.
-tham
/^^/c/'udgitha.
(acc.sg.)
durgandhi
a.
I'5-5'
ill-smellino-.
-(acc.sg-.n.)
n.
durnisprapadana
-nam (nom.sg.)
become
spoil.,
drstam
bad.,
be
(nom.sg.)
4.1.
(pres.ind.
I-3-7;
II-
I34-
-dhasya (gen.sg.)
dr9yate
lo-i.S-
(pres.ind.act.
VII. 26. 2.
VII. 11.
sg.caus.)
l(2t.).
f.
glance.
seeing.,
III. 13.7.
(nom.sg.)
-vam
1.
pass. -mid.
8.1
9.1
2.
V.4.2
ap-
8.2
(prcs.ind.pass.-
III. 6.1
9.5; 24.16.
1
4;
-van
II.
13.2.
4.2,4,5;
3.5.
cans, shoiv.
III. 17.7.
(acc.sg.)
daughter.
pear
III.6.
II. 9. 7.
IV.3.6.
mid.
8.3.
>/dr5 see;
IV.
f.
I.
pass.ppl.nom.
III.13.S.
dar9ayati
-tis
n. cviJ deed.
sg.)
II.
drsti
VIII. 10.1,3.
dugdhe
iinpurc.
-tam
10.
3.8(2t.).
dusyati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
duskrta
13. 1.
V.I. 7.
sg.n.)
3;
V.10.6.
dadarga (perf.ind.act.sg.)
diffi-
cult departure.
7.5.
13.
(prcs.opt. pass.-
mid.sg.)
-tva grd.
1.3.2,9.
VIII.7.4.
VIII.9.1
durudgitha m.
duhitr
12.
V.I3.I
1.
-ycta
-tarn (ace.sg.)
\/dus
IV. II. I
15.
V.24.3.
duhkhata
1.6.6;
mid.sg.)
pra grieve.
praduyante (pres.ind.
pass.pl.)
deva
5.3
10.4.
10.
;
11.
6.2
7.
7.
VIII.S,
12.6.
(acc.pl.)
VII. 2.1
devakama
VIII. 9.
7.1.
I
1
;
10.
1
;
vebhyas
IT.
(dat.pl.)
22.3; 24.14.
-vanam
1 1. 24.
(gen. pi.)
IV. 3. 7.
V.10.4.
desire of the
o'ods.
I-7-7-
(acc.pl.)
manam
gods.
III.
1. 1.
IV. 3. 4.
(loc.pl.)
devakama m.
-man
-(nom.sg.)
VIII.7.2.
-vcsu
83
devamadhu
I.I,
I.
daiva
8.1
lo.i.
devayana
a.
leading
gods.
-nas (nom.sg.)
the
to
V.10.2.
1. 6. 8.
vaki.
gods.
(nom.sg.)
1.10.9,10,11;
(nom.sg.)
-yam
2.1; 7.1.
m. cavity of the
ii.4(2t.),5,6(2t.),7,S devasusi
VI.3.2,3(2t.),
(2t.),9.
.
4;
gods.
4-7-
tarn (acc.sg.)
1.3.9(21.).
IV.2.2(2t.).
-tayam
VII. 1. 4.
VII. 1.2;
(acc.sg.)
(loc.sg.)
VI. 8.
I.
devasura m.
Asuras.
-ras
6; 15.1,2.
I.2i.
(nom.pl.)
and
gods
spot,,
place.
VIII. 15.
gods.
III. 1 7.7.
vam
m.)
1.
VII. 1.4.
(nom.sg.n., acc.sg.
VII. 1. 2
VIII.12.5.
3.1
7.
dosa
84
vena
dvarapa
VIII.
(instr.sg.)
12.5.
III.ll.
diva (instr.sg.)
IV.1.2.
3; 17.7.
divas (abl.sg.)
niirht
; instr.
as adv.
divi
III. 13. 7;
IV. 17. 1,
14.3.
10.1,3.
f.
VII.2.1
7.1.
-vas (nom.pl.)
V.1.4.
dosa xa.. faulty defect.
sena
VIII.
(instr.sg.)
dosa
V.12.1.
5.
(loc.sg.)
III. 12.6.
at 7iight.
V.19.2. VIII.5.3.
VI.
m. seer.
drastr
13.1.
instr.sg.)
-(old
VII.8.1
-ta (nom.sg.)
doha m. milking^ milk.
has
(nom.sg.)
\/dru
I'3-7
(acc.sg.)
(-vi
to.
II.9.7.
pi.)
en.
IV.3.4.
vidyotate
sg.)
dyavaprthivi
III.17.6. VII.3.i(2t.).
dvatringat
heaven and
f.
-tarn
earth.
VI 1. 4, 2.
(nom.du.)
VII.3.1.
(pres.ind.mid.
II. 3.1; 15.1.
VII.ii.i.
7-iin.
|-"pa I'un
upadravanti (pres.ind.act.
II.8.3.
13.4.
9.1.
'>
II.8.3.
13.4.
-ham
I'3'7
f.
thirty-two.
(acc.sg.)
VIII. 7.
3; 9-3(2t.); io.4(2t.).
dvada^a num. twelve.
IV.io.i.
VIII.1.3.
twelfth?^
twelve
1.
III.i.i
2.
IV.6.3
19.2(21.).
I
divam
15.1
13.1.
19.
VII.6.1
S.
10. 1.
(acc.sg.)
-sas (nom.sg.)
VI. 1.2.
V. dvarapa m. door-keeper.
-pas (nom.pl.)
-pan
III. 15.
(acc.pl.)
(2t.).
III. 13.6.
III. 13.6
dvavinga
dvavin^a num. a.
v/dha
t-wcnty-
-yam
II. 10.
-yam
second.
(nom.sg.n.)
5f.
II. 10.4.
(nom.sg.)
dvitiya num. a. second.
yas
II-23.
(nom.sg.)
1.
1.2.
Hvoity-two.
-tis
A^.30,
(acc.sg.f.)
VI. 1
dvavin^ati
III.
7.1.
-fena (instr.sg.)
_
85
III.
10.4.
dvyaksara n. a complex of
two syllables.
ram (nom.sg.)
II. 10.3.
DH
dhana
n.
booty ^
ivealth^
I.11.3.
(acc.sg.)
V.11.5.
nena
III.
(gen.sg.)
dhanamatra
f.
a measui-e
1.
(acc.sg.)
10.6.
g rant ing
a.
nayas
1.
(nom.pl.)
dhanus n. bow.
I.3.5.
bloxc.
blow forth.
pradhmayita
(pres.opt.
pass.sg.,
Wh.Gr.
73S.b)
VI. 14. 1,
dhamani
7. 6.
f.
772,
reed,' vessel of
VII.2.1,
VII. 2.
7.1.
I.
\/dha,
-usas (gen.sg.)
%/dham, dhma
i;
(acc.sg.)
-dhas (nom.pl.)
treastcres.
\-\}rsi
-mas (nom.sg.)
mam
11.6.
dhanasani
III.
19.2.
I.
-ram
nayas (nom.pl.)
(instr.sg.)
nasya
vein.,
nerve.
fnoncy.
nam
human body^
d.SiAh.
make ^ mid.
appropriate., obtain j
stitute., do.,
86
v/dha
between^
put
(-antar
cover, conceal.
upasamahita
VI. 16.
antardhaya grd.
2
i?zto
put down
dip
(water or other
in,
fluid),
V.2.6.
8.1.
in place
(-abhya pzit
esp.
wood
),
kindle
(fire),
abhyahitasya
(pass.ppl.
gen.sg.)
VI.7.3,5.
pass, be separated, be sick.
hvya
vyadhiyante
pres.ind.
VII.io.i.
pass.pl.)
|-ni
pi.)
(pres.ind.act.
II.9.8.
I.
10.5.
nihitam (pass.ppl.acc.sg.
m.)
VIII. 3
2.
toiich against.
abhindiitas
(pass.ppl.
II. 32. 5.
nom.pl.)
[-upani
deposit,
lay
down.
(jDass.ppl.
upanihitas
1.
nom.pl.)
[-pari
10.2.
surround.
paridadhati ( pres.ind.act.
V.2.2.
pi.)
pres.ppl.act.
(pass.ppl,
VIII. 1.3,
vidhlyate (pres.ind.pass.
(pass.ppl. nom.dii.f.)
-vantc (pres.ind.pass.pl.)
samahitam
nom.sg.n.)
sg-)
4-
te
7.
-dhau(perf.ind act.sg.)
VI.13.1.
pass.pjil.
VI. 7. 6.
IV.
6.1
adhaya grd.
I
VI. 7.5.
8.1.
nidadhati
avadhas (aor.ind.act.sg.)
nom.sg.f.)
|-ava
VIII.1.3.
-tas
(pass.ppl.nom.pl.)
"VL5.3.
saiiidadhati
VIII.1.5.
[-upasama
VI.5.1,3.
pttt in place.
sg.)
pres.ind.act.
IV. 1 7.4,5,6,8.
dhatu
dhyana
(-a9rad
'without
be
guage
faith.
a9raddadhat
19.
Vll. \^dhu
-dhanam
(pres.ppl.nikl.
|-9rad
shake
off.
VII. 19. 1
|-vi
shake apart
shake off.
20.1
dhuma m.
V.4.1
imv.mid.
8.1;
-mam
VI. 12.3.
smoke.
-mas (nom.sg.)
(3t.)-
9raddhatsva
re-
have faith.
9raddadhati (pres.ind.act.
sg.)
sJiake.,
tnove^
VIII.8.5.
acc.sg.m.)
sg.)
1,
Wh'^RVF.).
(prcs.ppl.
act.nom.sg.m.)
in
only
5.1
II.
6.1
2.1.
7.1
io.5(2t.).
(ace.sg.)
-mat
V.10.3.
V.10.3.
9raddadhat (pres.ppl.act.
(abl.sg.)
nom.sg.m.) VII. 1 9.1. >''dhr hold^ withstandy tm-
dhatu m.
layer.,
element.
2,3-
dhana
f.
a grain
pi. corns.,
resolve
dertake^
VI. 5.1,
-tus (nom.sg.)
(w.
inf.).
dadhre (perf.ind.mid.sg.)
IV. 10.3.
i.e.
v/dhma, see \/dham.
grain.
-nas (nom.pl.) VI. 1 2.1. v/dhya think., 7)i edit ate on.
dharmika
a.
latvful, d?iii-
dhyayati
fili virtuous.
kan
yanti
run.,
stream.
f-upa resort
to.
upadhavct (pres.opt.act.
sg-)
(pres.ind.act.pl.
VII.6.i(3t.).
15.1.
\/dhav
pres.ind.act.
VII.6.i(3t.).
sg.)
VIII.
I-S-M^iO'ii-
yan
(pres.ppl.act.nom.
sg.)
1.3. 12.
-yantas
nom.pl.)
II. 22. 2.
(pres.ppl.act.
reli-
dhyanopadan^a 2 na
88
-nam
(nom.-cicc.sg.)
6.i(2t.),2 ; 26.1.
doivn^fall to dust.
hpra
VII. 6. 2
-nat (abl.sg.)
nasya
(gen.sg.) VII. 6. 2.
a.
dhyanopadan^a
as
one's
perish.
pradhvansate
(2t.); 7.1.
having
|-vi
vidhvansate
the
portion
gift of nieditatio7i.
(pres.ind.
mid.sg.)
I.2.8(2t.).
-seta (pres.opt.mid.sg.)
A^ 1 1. 6.1
fas (nom.pl.)
(pres.ind.
VIII. 1.4.
crumble away.
mid.sg.)
(2t.).
dhruva
vas
a.
VI 1. 4.
(nom.sg.)
3;
va
vidadhvansire
steady^ safe.
mid.pl.)
v/dhvan
5-3.
VII.
(nom.sg.f.)
van
VII. 4. 3
(acc.pl.)
soiind.
|-apa
26.2.
;
(perf.ind.
1.2.7.
sound
ivroftg.
apadhvantam
(pass.
ppl.nom.sg.n.)
II. 22.
'I.
5-3-
N
1
10;
2.9(2t.);
8.5,7;
9.6;
17.1.
3.5,6(2t.);
(2t.),4(2t.),5(3t.);
3;
io.i,3(2t.),5;
4.2
9.
II.
12.2;
13.2;
14.3
(2t.); i5.5,6(2t); 16.
2;
I0.2,4(2t.).
II.4.2
4; 15.1,2; 16.7;
IV.1.7;
i2.2(2t.)
16.
19.2
4(2t.); i7.io(2t.).
V.I. 15(41.);
2.1;
3.2
(3t-)'3(3t.)4.5(3t-),7;
2.
io.3,8(2t.),io;
13.2
2;
14.2
17.2;
15.2
18.2;
9,i(2t.)
10.
l(2t.); ll.l(2t.),2(2t.),
3(2t.),6; 12 2,3,4; H-
(6t.);
2
15.2
12.2;
;
16.2
VI.i.i,7(2t.);
11.3,5
13.2; 14.
;
17.2.
4.5;
7.1,
2(2t.),3(2t.); S.3,5; 9.
naksatra
10.1,2;
2(21.);
12.1,2;
9.1
lo.i
i3-i(3t-);
4;
17-1;
21.1
12.
i5-3(6t.),
18.1;
19.1
22.1
20.1
i;
24.1(41. ), 2;
23.
26.2
(3t.)-
3.1,2
VIII.i.3,5(2t.);
S.i;
9.1,2;
11.
io.i,2(3t.),3,4(3t.);
I(3t-),2(2t.); I2.l(2t.),
3;
naksatra
1. 6.
(nom.pl.)
II. 20.1
(2t.).
IV.12.1.
12.
1.
soundings
roartfior.
f.
(^roariftg^ Jioiving
xvater^ stream.
-dyas (nom.pl.)
2.
VI. 10.1.
III. 19.
(intr. );
to
the
nameyus
namas
(pres.opt.act.
II.
pi.)
n.
1.
V.4.1.
21.
1.
f.
science of
the stars.
obeisance^
adoratio7i.
-(nom.sg.) 11.24.5,9,14.
[navadaga num.a. nineteenth.^
nine parts
VII. 26.3.
iji
or ivays.
[navama num.a.
VII. v^naQ be
VIII. 1. 3.
naksatravidya
4.
boiv^
navadiia adv.
tiou.
-rani
m.
nadathu
nadI
5.2
2.i(9t.);
;
89
-thum
16.2.
VII.1.3;
i;
1.3;
14.2;
13.1,2;
15.1,2;
(2t.)
nadi
lost^
7iifith.~\
vanish^ per-
ish.
na^yati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
VIII.5.3;
9.1,2.
(nom.sg.)
-kam
nakha m.n.
uail^ cIa~iV.
(nom.sg.n.)
sor-
II. 10.
5-
a.
-dbhyas
(abl.pl.)
^'III.
VIII.
nana nidhi
50
VIII.6.2,
-t)Isu (loc.pl.)
nana adv.
differently
pred.a.).
going
a.
nanatyaya
yond
(as
I.i.io.
and
name
n.
be-
dif-
differently^
namarupa
form.
14.1.
narada m.nm.pr.
fferettt^
-yanam
9.1.
nabhi
nave
navel^
f.
-yam
'wheel.
-bhau
(loc.sg.)
1. 2. 2.
(acc.sg. m.)
nidhana.
1st syl. of
II.
8.2.
I.
namadheya
n.
VI. i.
yam (nom.sg.)
w.
form name;
as adv. by
wash
f-nis
ace.
name^ name-
of.
V.2.8.
uirnijya grd.
nidhana
4,5,6; 4.1,2,3,4.
naman
(nom.-acc.sg.)
7;
III.15.2
7.5(3t.).
(4t.)
1.6.
IV.2.5;
4.2(2t.),
-nam
12.
i;
15.
1
VII.i.3,4(3t.),5;
3.1;
26.1.
14.
VIII.3.4;
-mnas (abl.-gen.sg.)
VII.i.5(3t.);
-mni (loc.sg.)
13.
20.1
a.
10.4;
9.8;
;
'^i
'
16.1;
5-1
14.
17.1;
;
21. i.
sharing
in nidhana.
-jinas (nom.pl.)
nidhi
1,
8.2;
7.1;
II.
II. 2.1,
(nom.sg.)
18.
19.
4(2t.); 5.2; 6.3; 7.3;
8.^
nidhanabhajin
V.2.i,6. VI.S.i,
3,5.
down,
n. putti?ig
2; 3--; 4-1
ly.
ma
nasal.
a.
of nasikya
II. 9.8.
m.
setting dozv?i;
treasure (a cert. work),
2.1.
VII.4.1
-dhim
(2t.); 5.i(2t.).
2*
''
(acc.sg.)
*
7 .1,
VII. i.
ninada
ninada m.
-dam
noise^
(acc.sg.)
hum.
III. 13.8.
15.2;
16.2;
nila
nihara
92
pancala
nunam
-ras (nom.sg. )
\/nu ciy
III. 19.2,
7ittcr
murmui'^
|-P''3-
sacred
the
(esp.
ately^
2.
alojtd^ i-oar.
syl.
prcs.ind.act.
sg.)
surely.
IV. 14.
VI.1.7.
pr
inhabitant
noii\
then.
10.3;
9.2;
1,4;
4. 3.
IV.i.3,5,8;
II.7.3.
(3t-)-
1.
V.3.4;
9.1.
I-34-
pacchas adv.
l>y
hemistichs.
4.
14.2
III. 13.1,
V.
6(3t.). IV.3.8(2t.).
vni.ii.
3.5; 10.10.
pancadaga num.
[2 pancadaga
teenth.^
pancadha adv.
II.21.3.
2.1
mlm
2.1.
7.1.
(acc.sg.f.)
-myam
VII. I.
III.io.i.
m.)
V.23.1.
(loc.sg.f.)
pancavidha
num.a.
ff
V.3.
a.
offive kinds^
fivefold.
-dham
(acc.sg.n.)
II. 2.
infve 'parts.
VII.26.2.
2; 6.1,2; 7.1,2.
1.1,2,3.
fifteen.
VI.7.1,2.
-mam
?iot.
_3(2t.).
afid
nyagrodha m. Jig-tree.
-dhas (nom.sg.) VI. 12.2.
2;
V.2.7.
panca num.^t'c.
VIII. 1
pddas or
I.
the
thereof.
yanam
1.4.5.
to
sacredforest A^aifnisa /
.
pranauti
h?imedi-
naimisiya a. relating
m nm
om).
tiozv^
adv.
VIL1.4.
(nom.sg.n., acc.sg.
rior-tribe,
-lanam
(gen.pl.)
V.3.1,
padviQagauku
m,
padvi^aganku
peg.
V.1.12.
VI. 14.2.
fall, foil mor-
y/)',
ally.
patanti
pres.ind.act.pl.
-tis (nom.sg.)
1.2. 11.
tim
1.
(acc.sg.)
go
(pres.ind.mid.
avapadyante
VI.8.3,5.
l-iipani
Jly
down
to-
wards.
upanipatya grd. IV. 7. 2
(-
around.
(pres.ind.
II.9.6.
mid.pl.)
f-
V.io.7(2t.).
arise, he born.
samud
1.9.1.
(-abhinis
come forth,
abhinispadyate (pres.ind.
(fut.ind.act.sg.)
1.8.6,8; 10.9,10,11
II.
4,6,8.
vyapatisyat (cond.ind.act.
sg-) I-ii-5'7'9- V.12.2.
bird,
esp. buttcrjly.
insect,
VIII.3.4;4.
mid.sg.)
2;
1.8.6,8.
patamga m.
(pres.ind.
mid.pl.)
appear, become.
II. 9.4.
vipatet (pres.opt.aet.sg.)
-tisyati
Sixa.
pi.)
paripatanti (pres.ind.act.
\-
samutpadyante
f-pari^/^K
pi.)
pi.)
8.2.
and
V.I. 4.
IV. 1. 2.
sg.n.)
cpd.
(in
deriv.),y//.
atipetus (perf.ind.act.pl. j
10.7.
1. 1
-te (voc.sg.)
0.7.
path, see panthan.
padyante
|-atiy?K past.
nii
v/pad
V.10.9.
utpatitam
VI.9.3
band.
-tas (nom.sg-.)
v/pat
-gas (nom.sg.)
pati
xvisc^ clever.
a.
93
10.2.
-kiiri (acc.pl.)
pandita
tethcr-
\/pad
12.3.
yantc
(pres.ind.mid.pl.)
VIII.12.2
prapadye
sg.)
(pres.ind.mid.
IILi5.3(5t.),4,5
(4t.),6(4t.),7(4t.).
i3.i(2t.);
14.1.
VIII.
94
prapatsi (aor.ind.mid.sg.)
III. 15.4.
praimnnas (pass.ppl.nom.
sg.)
\-
11.22.3,4(21.).
anupra Jo/lozv,
obey.
anuprapatsi (aor.ind.mid.
VIII. 14.1.
sg.)
upon., perform.,
stand., afis-wer.
pratipadyate
change
enter
(pres.ind.
|-upasam arrive
upasampady eta
(pres.opt.mid.
padyamanas
(pres.
VIII. 15.
mid.sg.)
I.
III. 17.6.
sg.)
ind.
like.,
into.
abhisampad^^ate
under-
III. 13. 6.
mid.sg.)
padyeta
|-abhisam become
opt.mid.sg.)
-ya grd.
(pres.ppl.
at.
(pres.
VI. 14.2,
VIII.3.4
12.
2,3-
padau (nom.du.)
VI.7.4.
patsye
2(2t.);
(fut.ind. mid.sg.)
V.T1.3.
(-sam meet zvith., succeed in.,arrive at ; caus.
acrree.
VI.8.6;
mid.sg.)
15.
1,2.
lo.S.
a.
distant,
(pres.ind.
-ram
(nom.-acc.sg.n.) II.
(perf.ind.act.pl.)
8.6
VIII.11.3.
patsye (fut.ind.mid.sg.)
VI. 14.2.
(pass.ppl.nom.
VIII.3.4;
12.2,3.
-rasyam
IV.4.5.
beyond.,
higher., better.
VI.9.2.
mid.pl.)
-pannas
10.5; 21.3.
padyamahe
-pedus
panthan m. path.
para
sampadyate (pres.ind.
V.17.
1S.2.
(loc.sg.f.)
VI.
1,2.
^5-1'
parahkrsna
a.
beyond black.,
deep-black.
nam
(nom.sg.n.)
5,6; 7.4(2t.).
1.6.
III.4.3.
parjanya
parama
parama
95
farthest^ paricarin
a.supl.
best,
a.
going
about,
serving,
-mas (nom.sg.)
(2t.),2.
paras
beyond
(instr.-abl.).
II. 10.6.
7.
3; 2.3.
afte>'.
II. 24.6,
directed away^
upoji^
J'olloxviiig
be-
yond.
adorned
tas
T
(nom.sg.)
VIII.9.
VIII. 9. 1,
(loc.sg.)
2.
tau (nom.du.)
VII 1.8.
2(2t.),3(2t.).
cas (nom.pl.)
I.6.S
7.
n.
nal aim^
a.
parovariyans
compar.
depai-ture, ji-
esseiice.
yas (nom.-acc.sg.n.)
7-
parayana
2,4.
-te
10,15.
paranc
IV. 16.
(v'/kr).
a.
(abl.sg.)
I V.I.
later^
yayas
nam (nom.sg.)
I.9.
i.
9.2,3,4.
11.7.1,2(21.).
yansam (acc.sg.m.)
bolt or bar.
(acc.sg.)
II. 24.
6,10,15.
paricaritr m. attettdant.
ta (nom.sg.)
VII. S.i.
paricaryagrdv./o be served.
I.
9.2.
yansi (nom.pl.n.)
II.
7.1.
yasas (acc.pl.m.)
parigha m. iron
gham
I.
2.
1.
9.
II.7.2.
parjanya m.
rain - cloud;
yas (nom.sg.)
4.
-ye
V.5.I
(loc.sg.)
V.22.2.
III. 13.
22.2(2t.).
11.15.1,2.
parna
96
n. ^ving^
parna
plumc^
leaf.
VII. 6. 1
palaga
8.1
10.
1.
(nom.pl.)
pres. ind.act.
10.
15.2
13.2;
16.2
17.2.
14.2;
VI.
1.2.4.
2;
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
V.2.9; 12.2 ; 13.
14.2;
15.2;
16.2;
VII.24.i(2t.)
17.2.
26.2(2!.).
yavas
(pres.ind.act.du.)
VIII.8.1.
yathas
(pres.ind.act.du.)
VIII.8.1,2.
yanti
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
III.17.7.
yet
V.2.8.
-yema
sg.)
cover,
sg.)
(pres.opt.act.pl.)
(pres.pjol.act.nom.
VII.15.4; 25.2.
VIII.12.5.
1.4.3.
paryapa9yat
act.sg.)
(impf.ind.
1.4.3.
a.
to
belonging
cattle.
-yam
II. 22.
(nom.sg.n.)
I.
paQU m.
(esp.
cattle.^ animal
for sacrifice).
9avas (nom.pl.)
2
9.2.
-9un
i;
13.1;
1.2;
lo.i.
II. 1=^.2;
VII. 2. 1
-9ubhis
II. 6.
VII.8.1
(acc.pl.)
18.2.
11.34.4,8,12,13.
yan
(pres.ind.
IV.3.6.
[-pari look around.^ dis-
pa^avya
I2.l(2t.).
yati
1.
paripa^yet (pres.opt.act.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
V.12.2;
V. 1.8,10,1
nom.pl.)
act.pl.)
11.1,2.
2,4;
-yasi
abhipa9yanti
V.2.3.
VIII.9.1,2;
sg.)
y antas
see^ perceive.
pa9yami
-yatas (pres.ppl.act.gen.
VII.26.1.
sg.)
III.i7.7(2t.).
n. leaf^ petal.
-(j-ani
v/paQ
III. 19.2.
paqu
3.1
7.
14.1.
(instr.pl.)
II.
12.2;
14.
13.2;
21.2
22.2
9ubhyas
22.2.
23.2.
(dat.pl.)
II.
pagumant
9USU
papisthatara
11.6.1,2
(loc.pl.)
a.
possessing
cattle.
-man
II. 6. 3
(nom.sg-.)
be-
yrcw
IV.6.1
7.1
V.
S.I.
a.
intelli-
looking^
gent.
VII. 26.
-yas (nom.sg.)
2(2t.).
y/'pa dri^ik; int.
pibati
drink ea-
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
1.2.9.
'
Wh.Gr.ioi6) VI.ii.i.
pipasati
(pres.ind.act.sg.
5-
III. 1 2.
das (nonioSg.)
6; i8.3(St. ),3,4,5,6.
7.1
S.I
9.
(pres.siibj.act.pl.)
7-i534(2t.);
8-1.354
(2t.).
papa a.
pam
evil.,
2.8.
wicked.
13.1.
I.12.5.
VI.7.1.
pitam (pass.ppl.nom.-acc.
VI.
1.
10.3.
sg.n.)
8.5.
6.i,3,4(2t.);
3(2t.);
10. 1.
sg.)
8.3.
IV.5.2,
(acc.sg.)
III. 17.2.
III.6.I
sg.)
VI.8.
III.17.1.
des.)
-dam
batas
VI.6.3.
(pres.ppl.
pad.
25.l(2t.),2.
-bama
pepiyamanas
VI.io.i.
2.8.
I ;
(pres.ppl.
-banti
piyamananam
pass.gen.pl.)
lS.2.
pagya
(pass.ppl.nom.pl.)
VI.5.2.
l8.I,2.
pagumant
-tas
97
yam
12.2
evil
f.
(acc.sg.)
doing.,
IV. 11. 2;
13.2.
papisthatara
a.
compar. of
of.
V.1.7.
paplyans
gS
(2t.),3(3t.),4{2t.),5(2t.),
manas
(nom.pl.)
V.24.
1.6.
(abl.pl.)
m.
skin
disease^
scab.
manam
para
-tur (gen.sg.)
21.
V.3.4.
(nom.pl.)
II.9.S
VIIL3.1.
1.
II. 22.
2.
a.
trodden by an-
cestors or the
Manes.
\/palay
kam
(acc.sg.)
-kena
(instr.sg.)
ivatch^
V.10.4.
VIII.
2.1.
kat
26.2.
(abl.sg.)
protect pitrlokakama
a.
V.10.4.
desirous
not
Manes.
-mas (nom.sg.) VIII. 2.
(Wh.Gr.io42.m
1087.C).
f-prati tvatch for, ex-
pratipalayam
(vbl.f.acc.
1.12.3.
sg.)
pingala
a.
I.
pitrhan m. patricide.
pect.
reddish brozvn.
VIII. 6.1.
VIII.
-lasya (gen.sg.)
las (nom.sg.)
6.1.
pitr
V.1.7.
(acc.sg.)
VII. 1 5.2.
jManes.
limit.
ram
1.4,
VI.i.1,3.
(acc.sg.)
1. 8.
n.
VII.15.1.
taram
pitryana
7(3t.).
paman
V.3.1.
5.
III.
-trbhyas (dat.pl.)
VIII.4.2.
3.
mabhyas
-ta (nom.sg.)
taras
V. 10.10.
6(2t.).
pitrya
-ha (nom.sg.)
VII. 15.
2,3-
pitrya
to
paternal, sacred
the JManes (a cert.
a.
work).
-yam
1.3
(
;
acc.sg. m.)
2.1
7.1.
VII.
99
piguna purusa
a.
backbiting^
derous.
pi^una
slan-
dam
III. 15.2
(acc.sg.)
(2t.).
pratipeksyati (fut.ind.act.
IL22.4.
sg.)
pita
Si.
(2t.);
i5.i(2t.).
procreation.
nam
6.1.
n.
lottis-JloTver^
pundarika
pur
esp. white one.
kam (nom.sg.)
VIII.I.I,2.
punyajita
a.
won
or right.
tas (nom.sg.)
1.
6.7.
punyaloka
putra m. son.
1.5.2,4.
4; 8.4;
VI.8.6;
V.3.2.
9.4.
VII.
lo.i.
25.l(2t.),2.
before.
II.
II.9.2
IV. 16.2,4.
24.3,7,
^'S-?*
VI.8.1.
III. 11.
4.5-
ran (acc.pl.)
stronghold^
wall.,
ras (nom.pl.)
f.
citadel.
VIII. i.
partaking of
-raya (dat.sg.)
5-
(nom.sg.) VIII. 5. 3.
by good purastat adv.-prep. before.,
eastward. III. 6.4 7.
good world.
(acc.sg.)
III. 17-
(nom.sg.)
piir
6.
a.
11.2
into
VIII.
-tasya (geu.sg.)
ram
io.3(2t.);
punarutpadana n. bringing
yelloTV.
the
(2t.);
Ill.i.i.
VII. 3.1
13.1 ;.i4.i.
-sas
spirit.
6.6; 7.5.
III. 12. 6
1.
1.
(nom.sg.)
II.6.1
;
IV. I
14.1(21.)
i.i
12. 1
1.2;
18.1.
;
16.
13.
lOO
purusanaya
1.6.
VI.2.3;
8.1,3,5;
4;
10.
V.7.1;
^5-^5-
2;
7.1
12.4.
II.9.7.
(acc.sg.)
VI.4.7 ; 8.6 ; 14. i ; 15.
1
-sat
VIIL7.
14-2-
-sam
1
prthak
pavate (pres.ind.mid.sg.)
IV.16.1.
putas
III. 13.7
(abl.sg.)
1. 1,2.
purva
VI.8.6.
p1
-se (loc.sg.)
IV.
10.3.
purusanaya m. 7nan-leader^
being before j m.
a.
forefathers^
an-
111.13.3,4
'(2t.),8(2t.); 13.7.
before^ frst.
prince.
ll.l(2t.).
-yas (nom.sg.)
5-
purusavacas
a.
ivlth
voice.
purnam
(nom.pl.)
V.3.3
sg.n.,
9.1.
BR.caus.?)
III.
12.9.
m ^o re- iv i n </,
puro vata
east-wind.
II. 3.1.
n. petal
of
blue lotus-flower,
puskarapalaga
IV. 14.3.
-ge (loc.sg.)
pustimant
a.
thriving.
(nom.sg.) V.16.1.
-man
n.
bloom.
3.1
(pass.ppl.ace.sg.f.)
1
1.6;
4.1
III.i.
;
5.1.
12.9.
(-prati^// up.
pratipiirnas
pass.ppl.
IV. 10.3.
nom.sg.)
y^diVCifll full.
sampiiryate
pres.ind.
mid.-pass.sg.,
Wh.Gr.
76i.b)
j^am (nom.sg.)
2.1
nam
III.
tas (nom.sg.)
2;
nom.sg.)
-sasya (gen.sg.)
pUSpa
( pass. ppl.
V. 10.10.
6. 1,
(2t.).
casas
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
IV.i6.i(2t.).
^'8'
V.3.3;
i4.i(2t.)
iS.i.
prthagvartman pra ja
a,
prthagvartman
having
a separate track.
ma
1S.2.
earth.
f.
prthivi
1. 1. 2;
-(nom.sg.)
11. 2.
1, 2
V.6.I
21.2(2t.)
VIL6.I 8.1
vim (acc.sg.)
;
vyas
1.2.
vvam
lo.i.
III. 15.5
VII. 2. 1
V.17.1.
II
IV.6.3;
2,3; 19.2.
I.
3.7
III. 12
17. 1.
7.1
(abl.-gen.sg.)
III. 14.3.
IV. 17. 1
(loc.sg.)
V.21.2
prthiviksit a. dxvellmg on
the earth.
-te (dat.sg.)
pra used as
II. 24.5.
word-
syl. in
U.S. I.
analysis.
V.14.1
(nom.sg.)
loi
prakagavant a. br ig h /,
gleaming.
-van (nom.sg.) IV. 5. 2,
3(3t.)-
IV. 5. 3.
-vatas (acc.pl.)
VII.12.2.
sg.)
cha
(imv.act.sg.)
chan
1.8. 3.
(pres.ppl.act.nom.
VI. 14.2.
sg.)
aprccham
(impf.ind.act.
IV.4.4.
sg.)
papraccha
(perf.ind.act.
V 1.7.4.
sg.)
apraksis (aor.ind.act.sg.)
VI.'i-s.
-sit (aor.ind.act.sg.)
7(2t.).
pautrayana m.nm.pr.
nas
IV.i.i,
(nom.sg.)
5; 2.1,3-
V.
3-5-
praksyanti
(fut.ind.act.
V.11.3.
pi.)
syam
15.2
V.ii.i.
sim
V.13.1.
(acc.sg.)
pra adv.- (prep.) onward^
forth.
12 2'
V.2.4.
(loc.sg.f.)
paulusi m.nm.pr.
sis (nom.sg.)
II. 11.
-jaya (instr.sg.)
III. 16.7.
1S.2;
15.
14.2
i6.2(2t.)
19.2;
17.
21.2
javam
17.2
20.2.
V.
;
19.2 ; 20.
22.2 ; 23.2.
(loc.sg.)
I-9'3'
I02
prajapati
jas
(nom.pl.)
IV. 1.4,6.
VI.8.4,6; 9.2
V.3.2.
pratihara
1
10.2.
VIIL1.5;
3.2.
in.
jabhyas
(dat.pl.)
I-S-i-
13.
Vni.15.1.
IV.
(gen.pl.)
III.11.4.
-janam
like ^ near^
before.,
1.9.1.
1.
III.i9.3(2t.).
1-3;
2
used
prati
as
1. 12. 5;
III.
II. 23.3.
13.2.
1.
VIIL7.
IV.17.1.
4.
in
II. 8. 2.
prajapati m.nm.pr.
(nom.sg.)
V.
syll.
word-analysis.
-tis
on.,
II.9.i(2t.);
pratirupa
a.
zvith likej'orm,
similar.
-pam
acc.sg. m.)
VIII.
8.1.
i,3(2t.); 8.i,2(2t.),4;
9.2 ; 10.3 ; 1 1.2 ; 12.6 prativaktr, see ^/vac.
(2t.);
tim
pratistha
15.1.
II. 22. 4.
(acc.sg.)
V.I. 7.
tayc
-tes (gen.sg.)
tail
III.
1.4.
11.22.1,3,
VIII. 1 1.3.
prajapatisakaga m. presence of Prajapati.
-9am (acc.sg.) VIII. 7. 2.
-khat (abl.sg.) 1.6.6.
pranava m. tJie sacred syl-
om.
1.5.1(31.),
V.2.5.
pratisthasamstava
a.
stead
or
praised
home.
vam
as
nom.sg. n.)
I.8.7.
ta
(nom.sg.)
taram
1.
(acc.sg.)
11.8.
1. 10.
1.
-tar
(voc.sg.)
I.io.ii;
U.S.
a.
attractive^ pratihara m.
worthy.
yaya
VII.5.2.
(acc.sg.) I.8.7(2t.).
V.1.3.
5(2t.)-
pranayya
18.2.
n. nail-tif.
-vas (nom.sg.)
-thayai (dat.sg.)
(loc.sg.)
lable
17.
-tham
VIII.14.1.
pranakha
steady support^
-(nom.sg.) V.i.3,i3(2t.);
(dat.sg.)
VIII.15.1.
5.
f.
basis., Jioine.
(dat.sg. )
Til.
1.5.
(^door^ porter^
utterance of the Pratihartar.
8.2
1;
15.1
1
19.1
ram
1
I
;
20.1
7.
11.
14.1;
13.1;
16.
6.1
9.6; 10.2
12.
II. 3. 1,2;
7.1
18.
I.io.i
(acc.sg.)
pratiharabha jin
shar-
II.
(nom.pl.m.)
a. old^
nasya
ancient.
III.
(gen.sg.)
(nom.sg.m.) 1.3.2.
a. sw^Lyoremost,
Jirst.
-mam
-mam
a.
lying- before
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
V.I 9. 1,
(acc.sg.f.)
V.19.
I.
a. Jirst
the
sun), j'usz
(of
prathamastamita
prathamodita
eyes., plai7i.
sam (nom.sg.n.)
V.2.
I.
II.9.S.
a.
{^sun-)rise
pratyanc
II. 23.1.
b,c,d).
17.7.
pratyaksa
the
backivard-
prathama
set
9.6.
pratna
ras
II 1.6. 1.
1.8,9.
a.
a.
<rleainijza-.
-mas (nom.sg.)
21.1.
pratyasvara
103
t7crned
a.
back-
frst risen
just after
(cf.prec.
word),
IV.5.2
6.5.
tyancas (nom.pl.m.)
III.
ticyas
III.
3.1.
(nom.pl.f.)
VI.IO.T.
pratyayana
n.
going
lordly.
back,
-nam
(acc.sg.)
III. 19.3.
-bhavas (nom.pL)
VII.
6.T.
prabhuvimita
n, lo7-dly
hall
prayogya
104
hall of the
or
Lord
(Brahman),
tarn
pranc
i;
15.1
VIII.
(nom.sg.)
12. 1
19.
-vam
5-3-
14.1;
13.1;
16.1
17.1
20.1
1.
(acc.sg.)
18.
21. i.
10.9;
to be yoked;
prayogya grdv.
Ivor k-animal^ prastavabhajin
m.
yas
(nom.sg.m.) VIII.
a.
sharitzg
-jinas (nom.pl.)
declined^ sloped^
II-9.3.
desirous
a.
prastutikama
12.3.
pravana
a.
in the prastava.
horse.
of praise.
the
m.
being
absence frotn
abroad^
taram
home.
sam
IV. 10.
(acc.sg.)
2.
-tar
1
-nas (nom.sg.)
8.
V.3.1.
pragansakama
a.
V.3.7.
pra^na m. question.
nan (acc.pl.) V.3.5.
prastava m. mentioning
prologue., ifitroduction
vas (nom.sg.)
;
a.
of Prajapati.
1. 2.1.
-yas (nom.pl.)
yanam (gen.pl.)
II.9.5.
prafiC a. tur7iedforward or
-nam (nom.sg.)
8.1
10.9;
1.4.
prajapatya
crtiidance.
(voc.sg.)
10.8.
V.13.1.
(voc.sg.)
pracinagala m.nm.pr.
V.il.l.
desirous
-las (nom.sg.)
of praise.
1.
1.
1. 8. 1,2,
3.1; 4.1
I.11.4.
(acc.sg.)
pracinayogya m.nm.pr.
pravahana m.nm.pr.
priest.
-ta (nom.sg.)
II. 2. 1,2
5.1; 6.1;
9.3
lo.i
eastward; front
or
eastern ;
as
n.acc.
adv.-prep. before.
.^
7.
1 1.
-an (nom.sg.m.)
I.
IV.6.1
III. 13.
7.1
8.1.
VI.14.1.
-acT (nom.sg.f.)
III. 15. 2.
II.4.1.
IV.5.2.
prana
-ak (acc.sg.n.)
pratar
11.9.6,7,
05
VI.8.6;
VII.
15.1,2.
15.1.
ailcas (nom.pl.)
III.i.
2.
III.
VI.io.i.
1.2.
prana m. air
breathy
vital
breathy
of sense.
organ
life;
2-7;
I.i.5(2t.)
5.3;
3-3.6;
7.1
15.4;
III. 13.1
II. I.
IV.3.3
18.2,4.
V.I. 1, 12,15;
13.1.
i4.2(2t.)
I.
1S.2
7.
19.
VI.5.2,4; 6.3,5;
7-
V.
1. 2. 2
(acc.sg.)
ii.5(2t.).
IV.3.3(4t.)
10.5.
VII. 15. 1,
-nena
(instr.sg.)
111.15.3,4.
8.2.
10.
-nan
(acc.pl.)
1,2.9; 5*
V.I. 12.
4.
-nanam
VII.4,2,
-nesu (locpl.)
11,1,2,
III.
(gen.pl.)
16.2,4,6.
11.7.1,2;
IV.3.4.
pranabandhana
n. fetter of
the breath or life,
-nam (nom.sg.) VI.8.2.
III, 14,3,
pranasamQita a, luhctted
or prepared by the
1.
(dat.sg.)
1.
3. 6.
VII. 1 5.
V.19.1.
expiration,
pratar
1.
8.4.
V.2.I.
(loc.sg.)
III.
(nom,sg,n,)
17,6.
and
VII.15.1.
nasya (gen.sg.)
-tarn
I.
-naya
breath.
12.3.
nam
VII.4.2
1.6,7,15.
I(2t.).
inhaled^
-nas (nom.sg.)
ne
III. 13.
(nom.pl.)
3.4; 16.1,2,3,4,5,6.
-acyas (nom.pl.f.)
-nas
inorniizg^
1.
V.I 9. 2.
10.6;
ii-5'7-
to-morrow.
12.3.
V.3,6;
VI, 13,1,
io6
prataranuvaka
m.
prataranuvaka
?natifi
I.
yabhyam
itito sio-/it.
1.
a.
pradegamatra
i7ig a span.
to
1
11.
prota
ineasur-
(acc.sg.m.) V.18.1.
(acc.sg.n.)
2(2t.);
13.2(21.);
14.
i5.2(2t.);
16.
2(2t.)
12,1,2; 13.1,2;
14.1,2
15.1,2; 16.1,2;
19.1,2
20.1,2; 21.1,2.
V.24.3.
(nom.-acc.pl.f.)
II.
18.1,2.
17.1,2;
s/'f^hx
swim, hover.
Jloat,
Yss^vcijlow together.
samplavatc (pres.ind.mid.
sg.)
17.2(21.).
n.
priyapriya
11.1,2
tas
V.12.
2(2t.);
inter-
view,
2.2.
yam
a.
va)
(-v/2
zvoven.
a.
priya
VIII.
13. 1.
III.l6.l(2t.),2.
-ram
-yayos (gen.du.)
Soma),
(nom.-acc.sg.)
(instr.du.)
VIII.12.1.
vw ruing
n.
pratahsavana
24.1,6.
VIII. 12.
-ye (nom.du.)
7-ecitaI.
nam
barhis
vante
pleasure attd
II.4.1.
(pres.ind.mid.pl.)
II. 15.1.
pain.
B
baka m.nm.pr.
kas
(nom.sg.)
prabaddhas
1.2.
bandhana
12.1,3.
bata
interj.
ILi.3(
alas!
4t. ).
5-
badhira
a.
deaf.
-ras
(nom.jDl.)
\/bandh hind.
Y^^i^^ fasten.
1.
10.6.
(pass,
p pi.
nom.sg.) VI. 8. 2.
a.
bi7tding ^
n.
fetter^ string.
-nam
(acc.sg.n.) VI. 8. 2.
babhasa m. eat er, devour er.
-sas (nom.sg.) IV. 3. 7.
V.i.io. barhis n. straw (of Kufa-
VIII.8.
grass), sacrificial
grass or bed (vedi).
bala
V.iS.2.
-(nom.sg.)
bala
budila
nini, cf.
lam (nom.-acc.sg.)
II.
VIL8.
(instr.sg.)
7.3,5.
-havas (nom.pl.) 1. 5. 2,
4. IV. 10.3. VII. 13. 1,
VII.8.2
VII. 8.
(gen.sg.)
2.
a.
giving much^
liberal.
-yl (nom.sg.)
a.
bahudha adv.
jioivcrfjd.
VI.
2.4.
bahudayin
(2t.); 9.1.
balavant
VI.2.3(2t.);
VII.io.i.
i(7t.).
-lat (abl.sg.)
lasya
V.13.1.
VII.S.i(2t.),2;
26.1.
lena
Wh.Gr.344.b
n. Diight.
22.5.
107
IV.i.i.
ma^tifoldly.
IV.3.6.
-vat
a.
having
(nom.sg. n.) II. 22.1. bahupakya
vantas
mucJi cooked (for the
(nom.pl.) II. 22.
poor),
5-
m.
ball
tax^
tribute^ S'lf^i
esp. offering.
-lim (acc.sg.)
layas
balin
-Y\
IV.i.i.
-yas (nom.sg.)
bahula a. thick^densc.,'ivide.,
extended.
II. 2 1.4.
(nom.pl.) V.14. i.
-las
a.
fowerful.
VII. 8.1.
(nom.sg.)
bahirdha
side.
adv.-prep.
out-
III.I2.7(2t.).
bahispavamana
n.
a cert.
(nom.sg.)
(2t.);
bahuvid
a.
knoivinsc much.
-vit (nom.sg.)
bala
a.
V.15.1
18.2.
VII. 5. 2.
youngs immattire.
-las (nom.pl.)
V.i.ii;
sacred song,
bila
11.
cleft.,
hollow., cavern.
VI.3.1.
io8
\/budh
brahman
4-3;
ceive.
dent.
-x\
a. great.,
loud;
Sa?nan.
-hati (nom.sg.f.)
n. a
brahman
prayer., de-
n.
votion., worship.,
piety ;
1.2.11.
-hat (nom.-acc.sg.n.)
II.
14.1,2.
boddhr m. pcrccivcr.
i
9.1.
n. devotion to
religious
19.1,4.
IV, 0.5
(2t.); 7.3;
8.2
9.2(2t.)
11.2(2t.);
13.2
VIII.
17.9.
VII. I.
I.
I.I
-mana
io.2(2t)
I2.2(2t.);
8.3;
10.
14.1.
(instr.sg.)
10.1,3;
-manas
i4.2(2t.). VIII.
7.4;
III.
11.2.
(gen.sg.)
lS.3,4,5,6.
11.3.
-yena (instr.sg.)
II.
VIII.5.l(2t.),2(2t.),3
15.1,6;
V.10.2;
Brahman's
life),
12.
11.4,5;
7;
3.4;
(nom.-acc.sg.) IV.
VI.i.i.
lo.i,
4- 1.3
7. 5.
i8.i(2t.),
studentship (first of
tlie four periods of a
yam
1.
14-14;
(4t.);
chastity;
lute.
-naa (nom.-acc.sg.)
ni.5.1,2;
brahmacarya
IV. 3. 7;
10.3.
(impf.ind.act.
IV.17.1,2,3.
sg.)
io--'4.
-rin (voc.sg.)
prabrhat
II. 23. 2.
(nom.sg.)
IV.3.5;
cert.
a. leading the
a
of religious stu-
life
anububudhire (perf.ind.
VIII. 7. 2.
mid.pl.)
brhant
5-i(2t.).2(2t.),3,4.
brahmacarin
III.
IV.5.2(2t.),
3(2t.); 6.3(2t),4(2t.);
brahman
7.3(2t.),4(2t.)
brahmavid
8.3(2t.),
VIIL3.4; 5.3.
brahman m. priest^ pray4(2t.).
er^
Brahman ^
imper-
brahmaloka m. world of
BraJiman.
-kas
-kam
man^ the
-ke
A.U-sotil
and Creator
(personified),
ma
4.
Ill, 11.
(nom.sg.)
IV.i6.2(2t,),4; 17.
8,9,10.
-manam
VIIL15.1.
(accsg.) IV. 17.
brahmapatha m. path
to
(nom.sg.)
IV". 15.
6.
brahmapura
n.
13-1;
12.6.
4;
13.3.
15.2
17.
II. 16.2.
III.iS.3,4,5,6. V.19.2;
20.2 ; 21.2 ; 22.2 ; 23.2.
a.
possess-
preeminence
iti
5-
re (loc.sg.) VIII. 1. 1, 2,
13.2;
16.2
(instr.sg.)
ing
III.
2.
Brahman'' s brahmavarcasin
city.
I5-I-
VIII. 5. 3,
(loc.sg.)
sena
BraJimaii (m.-n.).
thas
VIII. 3.
(accsg.)
2; 4-3;
14.2
9,10.
VIII.
(nom.sg.)
4-2(2t.),3; 5.4.
supreme
109
si
holy.
(nom.sg.)
II. 12. 2.
ni.13.3-
4-
brahmavid
(2t.).
brahmabandhu m. priesPs
companion
so-called
merely )
Brahman.
cred
having saknowledge^ m.
a.
theologian.
vit
2.
(nom.sg.m.)
IV. 9.
lO
brahmavidya
-vidas (gcn.sg.m.)
IV brahmanahan
14.2.
f.
science of
sacred kiio-wledge.
(nom.sg.) VII. 1.4.
2
VII.i
(acc.sg.)
2.1
7.1.
brahmasamstha
devoted
a.
wholly
sacred
to
(nom.sg'.)
II. 23. 2.
brahmahan m. murderer of
a ^riest^ sacerdoticide.
ha (nom.sg.) V.10.9.
brahmopanisad f. secret
doctrine of
cide.
ha (nom.sg.)
Brahman^
VII. 15.
2,3-
VL7.2. VII.24.2.
vani (pres.subj.aet.sg.)
IV.5.2; 6.3;
knoiulcdg'e.
thas
m. murderer
of a priest^ sacerdoti-
brahmavidya
yam
N/bru
7.3;
8.
3-
bruyat (pres.opt.aet.sg.)
1.7.8; 8.6,8.
4(
2t. ).
IV.9.2.
II.22.3,
111.16.2,4,6.
VII.
V.2.3.
VIII.i.3,5.
15.4.
Brahma- Upanisad.
-dam (ace. sg.) III. 11. 3.
brahmana (a. having to do
with brahman) m.
-yus ( pres.opt.act.pl. )
VII. 15.3,4. VIII.1.2,
theologian^
Brahman.
IV.4.2.
sg.)
-vita (pres.opt.mid. sg.)
priest^
14.1.
f.
birth-sta-
tion of a priest.
nim
V.3.4.
bruhi
(acc.sg.)
V.10.7.
(imv.aet.sg.)
V.
11.6.
3.6;
brahmanayoni
4-
bruvithas (pres.opt.mid.
VI.1.7.
VII.1.5;
1.2
12.2
13.2
14.2.
abravit (impf.ind.aet.sg.)
V.3.4.
bhakta - bhagavant
f-pra proclaim^
struct.
prabravama
bruyat
(pres.subj.
-])rutam
imv.act.du.)
VIII.8.1.
pres.opt.act.
VI.
III.11.5.
IV. 10.4.
act.pl.)
sg.)
in-
III
l-prati
answer.
pratyabravit
(impf.ind.
IV.4.4.
act.sg.)
14.2.
BH
bhakta
a.
n. fior-
divided;
12.3.
4,6,8;
IV.5.3
tioii^food.
tarn (acc.sg.n.)
x'^bhaks partake
drink.
bhaksayanti
V.19.1.
oj'^
eat^
pres.ind.
V.10.4.
act.pl.caus.)
bhaga m. dispenser.,
-gasya (gcn.sg.)
lord.
V.3.
VI.1.7;
V.3.4.
3.
'
45.
lO.
13.
i-S'S;
3.2;
4.3;
10.3
1.2
12.2
26.3.
your reverence!
I.S.
1. 11.
IV.4.3.
i,2(2t.).
-vatas (gen.sg.)
VIII.
7-3-
7,8.
bhaga vaddrga
like you r
a.
-febhyas (abl.pl.)
VII. 1.3.
9.3.
bhagavant
o..
IV.
blessed; (esp.
nom.-voc.) the gentle-
your
highness.,
V.1,7,
voc.sg.)
13; 3.6.
IV. 1.8;
i;
17.
nom.sg.)
IV.4.3.
(loc.sg.)
-vas (voc.sg.)
fortunate., ex-
cellent.,
man.,
sir !
vati
-van
reverence !
-van
13.2 ; 14.2 ;
-van tarn (acc.sg.)
I.11.3,
14.1;
1.
15.
VI. 1.4;
2.1; 13.
;
16.1
i2.i(5t.).
VII.I.l,2(3t.),3(2t.),5;
113
bhaya
2.2; 3.2; 4.3; 5.3; 6.
2
7.2
II. 2;
2;
14.2
18.
I
8.2
12.2;
22.1
23,1
13.2;
VIIL7.4;
8.i,3(2t.);
11.2.
vantau
(nom.du.) 1. 8. 2.
vantas
( nom.voc.pl.
)
V.ii.2,4,5(2t.). VI.1.7.
-vadbhyas
bhaya
yam
I
fear^ danger.
VI II. 9.
(acc.sg.)
lo.i
I.I.
-yasya (gen.sg.)
I.3.I.
v/bhal look.
|-
V.24.1
bright., shine.
bhasi
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
IV. 9. 2.
-ati (pres.ind.act.sg.) III.
i8.3(2t.),4(2t.),5(2t.),6
IV.I4.2;
(2t.).
15.4
(2t.).
(-prati
be clear
shine against.,
to., occur to.
nibhalayase
pi.)
VI.7.2.
f-vi
illumine.,
a.
light-leading ;
m.nm.pr.
(pres.ind.
VI. 12.
VIII.4.2.
sg.)
bhamani
mid.sg.caus.)
become
bright.
vibhatas (pass.ppl.nom.
ni 'perceive.
2;
n.
11.5.
w.
devouring j
-ni (loc.sg.)
>/bha be
V.
(dat.pl.)
a.
ashes.
24.1.
9.2;
10.3;
bhasman
10.
i6.i(2t.) ; 17. 1 ;
19. 1 ; 20.1 ; 31.
9.2
bhas
bharupa
13.2.
form.
pers.pron.
your
vati
thou^ ye,
honor.,
sir.,
(voc.sg.f.)
I.
mid.sg.)
bhos (voc.sg.m.)
4(2t.)
(2t.).
14.2.
IV.4. bhas
VI. 7. 2
V.3.6.
n. sheen., light.
-(nom.sg.)
(2t.).
1.6.5,6;
74
bhasvant
bhasvant
-vatas
a.
(
bhuvas
shining.
acc.pl.
VII.
\/bhiks beg.
bibhikse
(perf.ind.mid.
I.I0.2.
sg.)
bhiksa
-sum
"3
(indecl. air^ sacred
syll.
probably voc.pl.
of bhu,
II. 2.
f.
\/bhu
IV.3.5.
alms.
IV. 3. 7.
(acc.sg.)
>/bhid split.
bhinddhi
spaces.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
I.i.4,7,8,io(2t.); 2.14;
VI.I2.l(2t.).
IV.
(imv.act.sg.)
O ye
i3-4-
bhinnam (pass.ppl.nom.
VL12.1.
sg.n.)
na (pass.ppl.nom.sg.f.)
VL12.1.
2; 7.2; 8.3;
vide.
nirabhidyata
pass.sg.)
(impf.ind.
III. 19.
1.
vyabhetsyata (cond.ind.
mid.sg.)
\/bhi fear.
bibhyatas
nom.pl.)
\/bhuj
enjoy.,
V.16.2.
(pres.ppl.act.
1.4.2.
be of use
to.,
serve.
bhunjamas (pres.ind.act.
IV. II. 2; 12.2;
pi.)
13.2.
bhuvana
n.
being.,
things
world.
11.
10.3,4,6;
v/bhu
114
2; 9.i(7t.),2; io.i(2t.),
2(2t.); 11.2; 12.2; 13.
2;
i5-4(2t.);
14-2;
26.2(2t.)-
25-2(3t-);
VIlI.i.6(2t.)
2.1,2,3,
455^758,9.10; 4-2(3M'
3; 54;6.3(2t.),4(2t-);
9.l(2t. ),2(
2t.
(2t.),2,3(2t.),4
vatas
II.6.2
3-3;
9-1
5,1
14.2
io.5(2t.),6.
10.2.
VII.4.
6.1 (2t.)
10.
VIII. 1. 5
25.2.
6.6(2t.).
abhavatam
-van
(impf.ind.act.
1 1 1.
du.)
9.
1,
I.
(impf.ind.act. pi.)
sg.)
( perf.ind.act.
1.2.13; 10.5; 12.
III. 17.6.
2.
-vus
V.3.7.
(perf.ind.act.pl.)
8.1.
IV.6.1
abhiivam
7.1
1.
8.1.
(aor.ind.act.sg.)
3.7.
sg.)
V.
VI.4.6(3t.),7;7.6.
bhavisyati
I-9-3-
8.3
9.3
S.I.
11 1.6.3; 7-3;
V.io.
10.3.
VIII.S.
5(2t.),6(2t.).
2(2t.).
hend^ notice.
aniibhavasi (pres.ind.act.
sg.)
-vati
VI.7.3,6.
(
pres.ind.act.sg.
co1?^c.
abhibhavisyamas
|-a
fut.ind.act.
V.2.1,2.
be
fut.
1.2. i.
present^
live
pi.)
(aor.ind.act.sg.)
7.1
ind.act.pl.)
II.22.3,4(2t.),
-lit
IV.
VII.3.i(2t.)._
{-shhxbc ai^aif^st,over-
4.4^
babhiiva
^tva grd.
which
pass.ppl.,
-te (pass.ppl.loc.sg.)
6.1
VI.9.3;
1
(cond.ind.act.sg.
VII.2.1.
see.
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
12.1 ; 23.2. V.
;
V.13.2.
sg.)
-yat
bhnta
III.17.6.
-vanti
VIII.S.4.
abhavisyas (cond.ind.act.
lO.l
(pres.ind.act.du.)
(fut.ind.act.pl.)
1.5.2,4.
11.1,2.
)
;
VI.S.3,5.VII.io.i(2t.).
-yanti
VI.9.3;
10.2.
overcome.
parabhavisyanti (fut.ind.
act.pl.)
VIII.8.4.
bhu bhuyans
1-anupra
spread
9-1
conic
togcthei-^
originate^ develop.
sambhavati (pres.ind.act.
V.4.2
sg.)
5.2
6.2
1.4;
VI.3.1.
-tesu (loc.pl.)
sambhutas
impf.ind.
nom.sg.) V.9.2.
f-abhisam attain., get
yam
(acc.sg.)
2; 2.1; 7.1.
abhisambhavami (pres.ind.
VIII. 1 3. 1 (2 1.).
act.sg.)
-ma
vati
-manam
pres.ind. act.sg.
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
bhumibudhna
III. 14.4.
earth;
world.,
see
a.
become^ been;
n.
ture; dejnon.
I2.i(2t.),2;
III.
a.
compar.
more.,
mightier., better ; n.
ace. as adv. moreover.,
still.
further.,
12.1
13.1
VII.4.
;
15.
-yas (nom.-acc.sg.n.)
15.4.
tani (nom.-acc.pl.)
I.
or
III. 15.
-yan (nom.sg.)
tarn (nom.sg.n.)
the
1.
bhuvas, bhuyans
bottom
foundation.
-nas (nom.sg.)
spacc^
bhur.
bhuta
I-5'4-
^vit]l
a.
earth for
nm.ag.nom.sg.
the
(acc.sg.)
VII.23.1.
V. 10.1,3.
f.
abun-
VII. 23,
(nom.sg.)
Ust-); 24.i(2t.).
IV.15.1.
vanti
bhu
plenty.,
dance., multitzide.
into.
vita
VII. 1.4.
VII. i.
-(nom.sg.)
change bhuman m.
of.,
vions.
(pass.ppl.
possessed
V.18.1
science of
f.
beings or de-
hostile
III. 19.1.
act.sg.)
1. 1.2.
24.2.
bhutavidya
samabhavat
VIII.
11.1,2.
-tanam (gen.pl.)
7.2; 8.2.
19.3(21.).
V.10.8; 24.5.
anuprabhutas (pass.ppl.
nom.sg.) VI.ii.i.
j-sarn
II-9---
ii-5'7'9-
III. 12.6;
th ro ugh , Jill'
"5
ii.6(2t.).
i.
III.
V. 10.6.. VI.
ii6
bhuyistha bhratrhan
5.4; 6.5; 8.7; 9.4; 10. bhesajakrta a. made
3; "-3; 12.3; 13.3;
ing^ curative.
14-3; 15-3; 16.3. VII.
i.5(2t.); 2.2(2t.); 3.1,2
(2t.);
4.3(21.); 5.1,3
io.2(2t.)
1.
gain.
-yam
(acc.sg.n.)
9.1,2;
13.2(2t.);
I4.2(2t.
10.2,4;
I2.2(2t. ); bhojana n.
-yasi (nom.sg.f.)
2.1
14. 1,
).
V.2.7.
(acc.sg.)
taram
0.1.
best.
(acc.sg.)
VII.
(nom.pl.)
\"III.
15.2.
taras
2.3.
-tham (nom.sg.n.)
VI. bhratrloka
m.
world of
brothers.
2.4.
bhur
enjoy i?ig
tJie
VIII.
11.1,2.
food.
-nam
1.3.
IV. 17.8.
-tas (nom.sg.)
I,2(2t.);
VIII.9.3; 10.4;
heaU
-kena
(instr.sg.)
VIII.
2.3.
probably voc.sg.
of bhu, O earth!
II. bhratrlokakama a. desirous
syl.
23-3-
III-I5-3.5-
IV.
bhr^a
a.
inas
(nom.sg.)
(acc.sg.n.)
15.2.
VII.
VIII.
2.3.
bhratr ban
ly.
-9am
I7-S.4-
Wi. fratricide.
-ha (nom.sg.)
VII
15.
ma
madhyamdina
117
M
ma-
pers., see
pron.st.
aham.
rich in gifts ;
t}iix.
(-upa
upamathya
grd.
V.2.4.
a cert, aquatic
madgu m.
Tndra.
VIII.
van (nom.sg.)
bird.
IV.8.1,
-gus (nom.sg.)
11.3.
-van (voc.sg.)
12.
(pres.ind.
II. 12.1.
act.sg.)
maghavant a.
2,3;
abhimanthati
io-3r+;
VIII. 9.
11-2,3;
2.
a drinking spir-
madyapa
ituous liquors.
1.
-pas (nom.sg.)
majjan m. marrotv^ pith.
V.11.5.
ja
II.ip.i. madhu n. ?nead, honey.
(nom.sg.)
VI. 9. 1,
VI.5.3.
-(acc.sg.)
jnas
II.
a.
madhukrt
makitig s-weet(gen.sg., acc.pl ?)
ness
or
honey ; m, bee.
19.2(21.).
III. 1.2;
-tas (nom.pl.)
m^tacihant a. having hail
^
destroyed^
"jj
it hoiit
-hatesu (loc.pl.)
I.io.i.
thought^ reverence.
-tis (nom.sg.) VII.iS.i.
f.
-tim (acc.sg.)
VII. 18.
I.
(acc.sg.)
I-4'3-
mathyamanasya
stir,
ppl.pass.gen.sg.)
whirl.
5-i-
VI.
honey-cell.
2; 2.1
madhya
a.
3.1; 4.1
middle;
rotcn </,
5.1.
n. the
mid- heaven;
adv.-prep. amid^
inside^betiveen., among,
-yat (abl.sg.)
I
VI. 13.2.
(loc.sg.)
I.I
III.5.3;
VI.
16.2,4,6.
1.
I.
madhyamdina m.
turn
III.i.
-dyas (nom.pl.)
-ye
(pres.
6.1.
abhi
4-1
f.
middle.,
\-
madhunadi
loc. as
matsya m.fish.
-yam
3-1
VI.9.I.
haii{}).
mati
2-1
-nat (abl.sg.)
inidday.
II. 9.6.
14.I.
madhyama manusya
iiS
madhyama
a.
mid-
supl.
most^ medium.
-mas (nom.sg.)
Vl.5.1,
to
take
perceive.
be.,
VII.18.1
19.1(31.).
VIII.5.2.
-nyante
(pres.ind.mid.1.2.10,11,12.
pass.pl.)
VIII.8.5.
navai ( pres.subj.mid.
VIII. 12.5.
nvTran
pi.)
VII. 15.4;
nasya(pres.ppl.mid.gen.
VI 1.26.1.
(pass. ppl. nom.sg.
VI. 1. 3.
VII.18.1.
mimansam
(des.vbl.f.acc.
3.2(31.); 4.1.
V.22.2.
-si (loc.sg.)
%.6\
V.i.
V.ii.i.
manasyati
mitzd^
(pres.ind.act.
VII.3.1
4.1; 5.
I.
the
man.,
father of mankind.
-nus (nom.sg.) III. 11.4.
VIII. 15.1.
-nave (dat.sg.) 111.11.4.
VIII.15.1.
pratimanvanas (pres.ppl.
mid. nom.sg.) IV. 3. 7.
mind.
-(nom.-acc.sg.)
in
intetzd.
man.
n.
VI.
15.1,2.
v/manasy have
manusya
manas
II. 22. 2.
VII.3.1.
VIII.12.5.
-sas (abl.-gen.sg.) VII.
|-
26.1.
V. 1.8,9,10.
IV. 16. 2.
manu m.nm.pr.
-tva grd.
sg.)
-sa (instr.sg.)
sg.)
25.2.
n.)
),2
12.5.
pres.opt.mid.
VII. 13.1(21.).
nom.sg.)
sg.)
VII.3.i(6t.
7-
15.1,2.
manansi (nom.pl.)
manvanas (pres.ppl.mid.
matam
8.2(2t.),6;
VIII. 6. 5
manute (pres.ind.mid.sg-.)
22.
VI.5.1,4; 6.2,5;
6;
think., believe.^
sg.)
2.
V.1.5,
18.2;
ii(2t.),i4;
2,3-
v/man
16.1.
3;S.3;
human; m.
-yas (nom.pl.)
-yan
1. 2. 6;
a.
(acc.pl.)
II. 9. 3.
VII. 2.1
7.1.
-yebhyas
II. 22. 2.
(dat.-abl.pl.)
IV.9.2.
manusyakama maqaka
-yanam
VII. mantravid
(gen.pl.)
manusyakama m. hutnan
desires.
-man
a.
1.
7.6.
spiritual^
m chumi n g /
mixed beverage j
.
spoon., churning-stick.
-tham
mental.
III. 14.2.
-yas (nom.sg.)
mantr m. thinker.
-the
(acc.sg.)
(loc.sg.)
V. 2.4,6.
V.2.4,5
(4t.).
VII. S.i
-ta (nom.sg.)
manthana
n.
kindling Jire
by friction.
9.1.
mantra m. thought^
Veda,
speech.,
(of
the
including
rc,
hym7i
esp.
-nam (nom.sg.)
marana n. death.
-nam (nom.sg.)
5yajus, saman).
ras (nom.pl.) VII.4.1, marici
5.1
VII. 3.1
(acc.pl.)
-ranam
f.
ray.,
I-3-5-
1 1 1.
17.
beam.
-cay as (nom.pl.)
26.1.
I.
;
II.21.
III.i.i.
marut
14.1.
(gen.pl.) VII. 4.
2.
-resu (loc.pl.)
VII.4.1
amantrayam
sg.)
|-"P3.
(vbl.f.acc.
IV.4.1.
C(^ll
near.,
per-
upamantrayate (pres.ind.
II.13.1.
yam
V.
VII.
(nom.sg.n.)
24.1.
suade.
mid.sg.)
companions of Rudra
and Indra).
-tas (nom.pl.)
III.9. i.
-tarn (gen.pl.) 111.9.3,4.
martya a. mortal.
x/mantray speak.
8.1.
VII. 1.
mantha
I.y.S.
(gen.pl.)
manomaya
knowimr the
3-
(acc.pl.)
manam
-ran
a.
JMantras.
6.1.
IK
VIII.3.5;
12.
1.
-yas (nom.pl.)
IV. 3. 6.
maQaka m. biting
insect
'
gnat.fy.
-kas (nom.sg.)
10.2.
VI.9.3
y/mah
I20
%/ mahiy
y/mah
or.
mahayan
(pres.ppl.act.
nom.sg.caus.)
8.4.
mahatta
f.
greatness.
-tain (acc.sg. ) VII. 6.1.
mahant (mahant)
n.
a.
great ;
-han (nom.sg.)
II.
1.3
i2.2(2t.);
13.2(21.)
14.2(21.);
15.2(21.)
i6.2(2t.);
17.2(21.)
19.2(21.)
(acc.sg.)
IV. 2. 5.
m.
great housemaha^ala
holder.
-las (nom.pl.)
IV. mahagrotriya
V. 11.1,3.
a.
greatly
3-7-
hat (acc.sg.n.)
V.2.4.
hatas
VI. 7. 3,
(gen.sg.)
II.
5;
mahayya
to be
a.
(grdv.caus.?)
dor.
HI.
-(nom.sg.)
a.
3.5.
great ;
-van (nom.sg.)
a.
-sas (nom.sg.)
III. 13.5.
great-heart-
(nom.sg.)
VII. 24.2.
-manam
IV. 3.6.
III. 12.6.
(acc.sg.)
IV. 3.
7-
-mni
(instr.sg.)
(loc.sg.)
1.
1.9.
VII. 24.1
(2t.).
\/mahiy
mighty.
-nas (acc.pl.)
III. 16.7.
might.
-ma
-mna
splendid.
mahatman
VI.4.5.
3.
mahiman m. greatness^
delighted.
mahasvant
V.ii.i,
-yas (nom.pl.)
mahidasa m.nm.pr,
I.
ed^
bull;
pl.nm.pr.
-sesu (loc.pl.)
VI.4.5.
20.2(2t.).
-hantam
II. 11.
mahavrsa m. great
greatness.
i8.3(2t.)
proud.
-nas (nom.sg.m.)
VI. 1.2,3.
2.
be great., happy^
or blessed.
mahiyate
ma manusa
(pres.ind.mid.
VIII.2. 1,3,3,4,5,
sg.)
121
matrhan m. ?natricide.
-ha (nom.sg.) VII. 15.
-yamanas (pres.ppl.mid.
6,7,8,9,10.
VIII. 10. 1.
nom.sg.)
1
ma
adv.-conj. not ;
lest
2 1
that matra
f.
measure^
Vunit.,
S7iiall
meas-
period;
pret.,
unaug.
doubtfully w.
opt.).
III. 1 1.2;
meastire^
Hot^
(w.
15.2;
IV.i.2(2t.);
V.1.12. VI. 7. 1.
16.2,4,6.
10.2.
ure^
due
particle;
arrange-
ment.
-ram
(acc.sg.)
III. 19.1.
VIII.i4.i(2t.).
caus. btiild.
mapayam
4-ativi, see
ativimana.
mansa n. meat.
-sam (nom.sg.)
f.
i.
-vas
m.
world of
(instr.sg.)
VIII.
2 2
matrlokakama a. desirous
of the world of mothers.
a.
h u m a n y m.
(nom.sg.m.)
IV.
17.9.
-vam
(acc.sg.m.)
IV. 15.
6.
manasa
a.
mental^ spirit-
ual.
vtothers.
-kena
manava
man.
mother.
matrloka
II. 24.
-nasya (gen.sg.)
7-
II.19.
VI.5.1.
matr
24.1,10. III.l6.3,3(3t.),
IV.i.i.
sg.)
(caus.vbl.f.acc.
II.
V.10.2.
manusa a. human.
sam (nom.sg.n.)
-sasya (gen.sg.)
-sas (nom.pl.)
V.3.6.
V.3.6.
V.1.4.
masa
122
masa m.
v/muc, moks
7nonth.
IV. 15.5.
-san (acc.pl.)
V.9.1; 10.1,3.
-sebhyas
IV.
(abl.jDl.)
15.5.
a.
paired'
1.
(nom.sg.n.)
1.5,
6.
-nat
II. 13.2
(abl.sg.)
(pres.ind.pass.
VI. 16.2.
sg.)
m.
nam
mucyate
release.
V.io.2,4.
mithuna
mula
(2t.).
VIIL13.1.
[-vi set
Jree^ abandon^
give up.
vimoksye (fut.ind.mid.
VI. 14.2.
sg.)
\''nlud be
merry
modamanas
rejoice.
(
pres.ppl.
effect,
see
i093.a)
mimaiisa
mukha
f.,
mutra n. urifte.
-ram (nom.sg.) VI. 5. 2.
Wh.Gr. murta a. thickened., coagulated.
II.13.2.
see -v/man.
mouthy ace j
n.
hc-
(nom.-acc.sg.) IV.
2.5;
(instr.sg.)
III. 6.
-khat
mukhya
the
10.1,3.
IV.2.5.
(abl.sg.)
VIII. 1 3.1.
a.
pertaining
mouth
chiefs
or face^
5'3-
10.9,10,
11.4,5,6,7,8,9.
-dhanam
V.
18.2.
(acc.sg.)
VIII.
6.6.
mula
cause.
primary.
yas (nom.sg.)
i2.2(2t.)
to
I.S.6
(nom.sg.)
2t.),8(2t.)
II
3;
head^ chiefs
leader.
-dha
14.2.
-khena
VII. 10.
I(2t.).
murdhan m.
giitning, head.
kham
-tas (nom.pl.f.)
1.2.7;
v/mr
-Ic
v/mr
v/mluc
VI.ii.i.
(loc.sg.)
die.
mriyate
(pres.ind.pass.-
VI.ii.3(2t.).
mid.sg.)
-yasva (imv.pass.sg.) V.
avamr^ya
f . earth., clay.,
loam.
VI. 1.4.
-(nom.sg.)
mrtpinda m. lump of clay.
[-das (nom.sg.)
1. 2.
7*,
grd. VI.13.1.
exatnine.
vimrstam (pass.ppl.nom.
sg.n.)
megha m.
ro.8.
mrttika
12^
1.1.4.
cloud.
II. 3.1
-ghas (nom.sg.)
4.1
15.
1.
',
V.
III. 19. 2.
ro.6(2t.).
medhavin
a. iutelligejtt.
VI. 14.3.
8*]
-dena (instr.sg.) VI. 1.4. maitreya m.nm.pr.
-yas (nom.sg.) 1.12.1,3.
mrtyu m. death.
a.
paired; n.
I'4-3- maithuna
-yus (nom.sg.)
-vl (nom.sg.)
copulation.
VIII.4.1.
-yum
II. 2 2.4.
(acc.sg.)
-nam
(acc.sg. n.)
III. 17.
VII.26.2.
yuna
12.
(instr.sg.)
VIII.
yos (abl.-gen.sg.)
2.
mauna
n. co?idition
of
be-
1.
I.4.
11.22.3,5.
a.
sage., silence.
nam (nom.sg.)
VIII.
with pas-
mrditakasaya
5.2.
sion or impurity %^nired gratify.
rubbed or zviped away.
|-ni delight., bless.
26.
nimrederan
VII.
(pres.opt.
-yaya (dat.sg.)
III. 1 9.4.
mid.pl.)
tender.
v/mla
relax., fade.
soft, gentle.,
|-vi zvither aivay., de-(nom.sg.n.) II. 22. 1.
7
mrdu a.
mrnmaya
a.
made of
clay.,
earthen.
-yam
t/mrQ
stroke.,
sider.
cay.
vyamlasyetam (cond.ind.
V.I 7.2.
mid.du.)
go to rest.,
f-ni go down.,
set.
set:
ya-
124
nimlocati
ya-
(pres.ind.act.
IIL11.3.
sg.)
st.rel.pron.
what
w^o, w/^2c//,
and a.),
as
ace.
(perf.incLact.
III. 1 1.2.
sg.)
(sLibst.
der that
nimumloca
i8-345'6(2t.);
I9-4-
11. i,
(2t.); 8.4(2t.);
2t.
2(
5.
7.4
6.4(2t.);
I2.1,2( 2t.)
adv.conj., I.
that (w.word of say-
i3.i,2(2t.); 15.1,2,3,4;
16.1. V.I. 1,2,3,4,5; 3.
4;
that, as
12.2;
io.6(3t.),io(3t.);
if'
24.1,2,3.
yas (nom.sg.m.)
I-i.y,
8,io(3t.); 2.7,8(2t.),
14;
14.2;
13.2;
16.2
17.2
15.
iS.i
V1.5.i(3t.),
2(3t-)'3(3t.); 6.1,2,3,
4; 8.6; 9.4; 10.3; II.
3.i(2t.),3(2t. ),7
2-2;
3(2t.); 6.2;
II-I-4;
5.2
10.6
6.2
1
7.2
1.2
14.
17.2
2
8.3(21.) ;
12.2 ; 13.
16.
[5.2
18.2
21.2,4
111-6.3;
19.2
20.
24.2,16(2!.).
7-3;
10.3;
^-3;
1.3
(2t.),8(2t.),9(2t.);
9-
12.';
13.
8.2
3.2; 4.3(2t.); 5.
9.2(21.)
II.2(2t.);
7.2(2t.);
io.2(2t)
13.2;
i4.2(2t.); 16.1
23.1
24.1.
I2.2(2t.);
VIII. 3.
;
5.1; 7.1
(2t.),3(2t.),4(3t.); 10.
(2t.),4; 4.1
i;
yat
i2.4(3t.),5.
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
1.3,5,8(21.);
I.
2.9(2t.),
l(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.),4
10,12; 3.3(2t.),4,9,i2;
(2t.),5(2t.),6(2t.),8
4-2,4,5
(2t.);
15.2;
i6.7(2t.);
6.5(2t.),6(2t.)
7-4(4t-),5(2t.);
10.2,6.
ya
v'yaj
II.i.i(2t.),3(3t.),4; 4.
S.i(3t.),2(4t.);
i(2t.);
24.1.
9-2,34'5A7>S;
2.3;
3.3;
4.
3;
5-3;
6.1
7.1
8.
9.1
lo.i
12.1,3,
i3-7(2t.);
4(2t.),7;
i5-4(2t.),5,6,7;
(3t-)'2(3t-)'3(3t.)4,7;
IV.1.4
V.i.i3(2t.),i4(2t.);
i;
3.2;
2.
10.
8.i(2t.);
i;
17.
15-1;
16.
VI. 12.2.
1.
2.10
yam
(acc.sg.f.)
IV. 2. 2.
20.1
yena
17.1
i9-2(5t-)'34-
H-M
13-1;
VIII.i.5(4t.)
III.1.4;
125
21.
1.3.9,11.
V.3.6; 19.1
1
22.1
23.1.
(instr.sg.)
1.3.8,10
V.I
VI. 1. 3.
IV. 3.6.
(2t.).
1.6.
yasmai
(dat. sg.)
yasya
gen.sg.
I.6.7.
III. 14.4.
yasmin
(loc.sg.)
IV. 3.
V.1.7.
4.
yasyam
2;
16.2;
15.3;
2; 23.2.
17.2;
VI.I.3,7;
4.
i(3t.),2(3t.),3(3t.),4
74;
(3t-)'6(3t-)'7;
3(2t.);
2;
2.1
VII. 1. 1,3;
5.2( 2t.)
(5t.)
II.
io.2(2t.);
13.1.
;
10.
3(2t.);
24.1.
3.
5-i(-t.),2(2t.),
8.1 ; 9.2; 10.
12.6;
3; 11.2,3;
ya (nom.sg.f.)
10.9,10,11
14.1.
1.3.4(2!.);
I
yam
VIII. 1. 1
(2t.),2(3t.),3(2t.);
2,5(4t.);
9-
(acc.sg.m.)
(loc.sg. f.)
6(2t.),7,S;
1.2;
I.
2.1
10.2.
1-3.9.
III.
3.1; 4.1; 5.
V.IO.l(2t.),3,7(3t.).
25.2.
VII.6.i(3t.);
VIII.i.6(2t.); 3.2(2t.j;
4.3; 5.4;
12.6.
yaai (nom.pl.n.)
II. 21.3.
I-3-5'
111.16.1,3,5.
II. 4.1
(nom.pl.f.)
VIII.6.1.
(2t.).
yas
yan
IV. 15.5.
V.io.1,3.
19.2.
rifice.
yaksyate
V.12.1
sg.)
(fut.ind.mid.
1.10.6.
126
ya jamana
~yamanas
V.I
nom.sg.)
istam
f ut.ppl.mid.
VIIL5.1.
n.)
istva grd.
IV. 16.3,5.
yajamana
m.
fice.
1.11.1,3.
11.24.6,10,15.
IV. 16.
(acc.sg.) IV.17.10.
naya
(dat.sg.)
24-5'9i4II. 24.
yajur-
Veda.
II. 23.1.
(nom.sg.)
IV.16.1
(2t.),3,5; i7-8,9-
I-3-7(nom.sg.)
III. 2. 1.
VII. 1. 4.
III. 2. 2
(acc.sg.)
15.7.
yajustas
VII. 1. 2
2.1
7.1.
adv.
concerning
the Tajjis.
IV. 1 7.5.
yajus n. sacred azve, worships sacrifice^ sacrificialfior inula.
I.4.3.
(nom.-acc.pl.) III.
2.1,2.
1.
(acc.sg.)
IV. 16.3,5;
VIIL
10.7.
17-10.
II.
19.1,2.
-das
linsi
-iias
inaii.
2,5^9' 15-
rificial
sacri-
fice.
nam
3.5-
nam
II. 23. 2
IV. 17.
(gen.pl.)
111.16.1,2,4,6.
nas (nom.sg.)
dam
-usam
_5(3t.).
of sacri-
nasya (gen.sg.)
IV.
(abl.pl.)
yajna m. worships
(pres.ppl.mid,)
institutoi-
-urbh^-as
I7-3-
1.5.
pass.ppl.nom.sg.
yatas
^sam
zmite^ meet
to-
gether.
sarhyetire
(perf.ind.mid.
1.2. 1.
pi.)
|-anva connect ^
share.
make
to
a n V ay a11a
which
yatara
pass. ppL,
see.
rel.pron.a.compar.
which of two.
-re (nom.pl.)
VIII.8.4.
2t. ).
A^.9.2
yatkama
rcl.
yatkama
a.
yadi
127
a.
desiring yathakratu
wisdom
which.
-mas (nom.sg.)
I.3.12
accorditig to
possessed.
tus (nom.sg.m.)
III. 14.
I.
(2t.)
1.7;
1
6.1
2.5;
ii.i
S.
VI.
^^^
8-i3'5-
VIII.6.3,4,
24.1(21.).
;
7.1
16.2,4; 17.8,9.
2-34;
5
IV.
III.i3.8(2t.).
adv.
15.I.
ivhich
in
that, see
yatha
yad rel.adv.conj.
way, as/ that (w. word
ya-.
of
thinking,
saying,
etc.).
1.4,6;
16.3,5;
V. 1.8.9,10,1
17.7.
1,
1,3,5.
7-3o;
4-7;
8-2,3,5^6;
14.1
VII.3.1;
15.1.
VI. 15. 2.
2.9.
13.1;
17.1;
20.1 ; 21.
;
i(2t. );
18.
I
VII.
S.i; 10.
19.1
VIII. 1.4.
22.1.
if/ al-
yadi rel.adv.conj.
though
(-\-SLT^i),
wheth-
er, or (4-va).
8.3; 9.1,2;
12.2,3.
yathakamacara m. motion
according to desire.
-ras (nom.s*g.)
VII. i.
5; 2.2; 3.2; 4.3; 5.3;
6.2
2
7.2
11.2
14.2.
ac-
V.I 0.5.
12.4.
rel.adv.
VIII.1.5.
yathavidhanam
8.2
12.3
9.2
;
10.
13.2
11.22.
15-16 I7-46A
34'8; 3-5; 24.4.
;
16.1,2.
15.2,3;
VIII. 2. 1,2,3,4,
5A7A9;
(2t.)-
VI.
VII.5.2(2t.)
9.i(2t.); 13.1
24.1,
IV.
V.2.
io-i(2t. ),3
128
yadgotra \/yuj
a.
yadgotxa
-ras
of tv/iat
tribe.
(nom.sg.)
IV.4.2
3rd
of sattiya.
syl.
x/yam
hold, lift.
acchati
( pres.ind.act.
f-sampra
er.
qff'cr
togeth-
Ti
esign.
yana
n.
going /
(pres.
11.24.6,10,
ind.act.pl.)
vehicle,
16.
VIII.
(instr.pl.)
12.3.
mainder. V
yavadayusam
througJwid
as
adv.
as there
lo7tg
samprayacchanti
move.
VII.15.1.
yavatsampatam
V.24.4.
sg.)
13.2.
stir,
-nais
|-pi"a ojfcr.
prayacchet (prcs.opt.act.
1.
syl.
chariot.
VIIL3.5(2t.).
sg.)
pass.ppi.nom.
VIII.3.5.
V.3.4.
sg-)
ya sacred
(2t.),4(2t.).
-yam
ayastas
re-
is
0.5 .
adv.
V.9.
life.
2.
VIII.15.1.
yava m. grain, corn, esp. yavant rel. a. as great, as
barley, barley-corn.
far ; n.acc. as rel. adv.
-vat (abl.sg.)
ya9as
n.
III. 14.3.
-(nom.sg.)
III. 1.3;
2;
3-2;
2.
VIII.i4.i(5t.).
4-2; 5-2;
-sa (instr.sg.)
conj. as far or
2.
13-
TII.1S.3,
I.
I-3-
vat (nom.-acc.sg.n.)
a.
having glory
ox fame.
[-a.
9.1
be vexed or
cast.
down-
III.6.4; 7
1.3.
VI. 14.2
1.5.
VII.1.5; 2.2; 3
-vT (nom.sg.)
III. 13.2.
v^yas be eager or heated.
9.3;
15.1.
yaQasvin
as,
sam
long
while.
glory, fame.
9.2
12.2
10.2
13.2
14.2.
1.2
VIII
6.4,5.
yuktas
pass.ppi.nom.
yuyam ragmi
VIILl2.3(2t.).
Sg.)
yuyam,
f.
yoni
tvam.
see
home;
girl,
woman,
ivifc.
-(nom.sg.) V.8.1.
yauvana n. youth.
-ne (loc.sg.) IV. 4. 2,4.
staliou^
V.8.1.
(nom.so-.)
f.
vulva; yosa
race, caste.
nis
V.10.7
(acc.s<^.)
(2t.).
lap^ xvojnb,
birth
129
-nim
R
v/ram
v/raks guard.
f-abhi protect.
abhiraksati (pres.ind.act.
I
sg.)
rajata
a.
noin.- acc.sg.n.
IV. 17.7.
IV.
111.19.1,2.
-tena (instr.sg.n.)
ratha m. chariot.
thas
lighted
IV. 16.
(nom.sg.)
-yam
rathamtara
man.
n.
a cert. Sa-
12.1,2.
V.10.7.
a.
having
f.
delightful course or
18.2.
iots.
rayimant
|-sam hold
together, he raQmi
in hand.
samrabdhas
nom.pl.)
a.
rich.
-man (nom.sg.)
seize, clasp.
hand
good.
good conduct.
ram (nom.-acc.sg.)
\/rabh
in,
be de-
to
(acc.sg.f.)
ramaniyacarana
3.5-
rathagreni
I.IO.II.
pi.)
ramaniya grdv.
17.7.
(pres.ppl.niid.
VIII. 12.3.
nom.sg.)
f-sama cease.
samaratas (pass.ppl.nom.
n. silver.
-tarn
VIII. 12.5.
(2t.).
-amanas
shining, silvery ;
m.
line,
V.16.1.
cord, ray.
beam.
-mayas (nom.pl.)
pass.pj^l.
1.2; 2.1
1.12.4.
3.1
4.1
Ill,
;
5,
rasa ra9i
[30
VIII.6.2.
I.
V.4.T.
mill (acc.pl.)
I-5--'
-inibhis (instr.pl.) VIII.
-janam
jiias
-jan
2.10.
2;
4.2;
.2(8t.)
2.2
VL9.2
5.2.
rajana
(instr.sg.)
IV.
I.r.9.
III. 5.4
(3t.).
-sun (acc.pl.)
IV. 17.1,
best ;
a.
1.3.
m.
f.
Sdvian.
II.
qiiiiitessencc.
I-I.3.
be ilhistrious.
virajati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
V.3.5.
-yam
V.2.6.
(acc.sg.)
as
(dat.sg.
inf.)
II. 24.4.
ratri
f.
night.
V.6.1.
-ris (nom.sg.)
-rim (acc.sg.)
-res (abl.sg.)
V.10.3.
V.io.3.
-rau (loc.sg.)
V.2.4.
-ris (acc.pl.)
VII. 9. 1,
v/radh succeed.
II. 16.2.
janya=ksatriya)
(nom.sg.)
V.2.6; 4.2;
noble?na7i.
queen.
-yaya
-ja
rajni
supl. sappiest^
mas (nom.sg.)
|-vi
cert.
eignty.
I-
(gen.pl.)
III.5.4.
rasatama
mere
dhus
VI.9.1.
sanam
n.
(nom.sg.)
7.4,5,6.
(nom.pl.)
2,3.
\'1I1.
(gcn4^1.)
20.1,2.
VII.7.1.
-sas
(acc.sg.)
sena
17.1
(2t.).
sam
1.
14.
3.
V.3.6;
i4.i;i5.
13.1;
16.
jiiam
1
V.3.6.
(voc.sg.)
12.1;
6.5.
V.5.2.
(acc.sg.)
(gen.sg.)
1.
10.4.
10.6.
(-vi
miss^lose (instr.).
viradhisi (unaug.aor.ind.
mid.sg.)
ra^i m. Jicap^
work).
III. 1 1.2.
7)iass
(a cert,
rahu revant
918
VII. 1. 4.
(nom.sg.)
-fim (acc.sg.)
2.1
VII. 1.3
hold
|-ava
ojf'^
rahu m.nm.pr.
-hos (gen.sg.)
pres.ind.
II. 15. 2.
mid.sig.)
VIII.
kccp^
acquire.
avarunddhe
7.1.
131
7.1
f*^^^-
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
risyati
IV.i6.3(2t.).
yet
pres.opt.act.sg.
IV. 1 7.4,5,6.
-yantam
pres.ppl.act.
sg.)
(pres.ind.act.
forth.
praroheyus (pres.opt.act.
V.2.3.
I.
III.1.4; 2.3;
7.5(2t.).
^.2,3;
9-2,3;
10.2,3.
VI.4.l(2t.),2(2t.),3
IV.16.3.
(2t.),4(3t.),6(3t.).
rise.
hpra grow
of.
anurisyati
8.1.
pi.)
IV. 16.3,
acc.sg.m.)
|-anu be Jiici't on accoimt
v/ruh
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
-pena(instr.sg.)
3-4;
VIII.
12.2,3.
VIII. 10.2,4.
rudam (unaug.impf.-aor.
10.
7.2,3; 8.2,3; 9.2,3;
III. 15. 2.
ind.act.sg.)
III. 15. 2.
rodayanti
(pres.ind.act.
III. 16.3.
pi. cans.)
rudra
m. storm-god;
Rudras
pi.
]\Ia-
(sons),
ruts (companions).
ras (nom.pl.)
III. 7. 1
-ranam
I.
i6.3(2t.),4.
(gen.pl.)
111.7.3,4;
v/rudh obstruct.
II. 24.
16.4.
2 2
-pani (nom.pl.)
7.
VI.4.1,
1 A
-,0,4-
-(nom. -acc.sg.)
8.2;
V.7.3
10.6.
III. 17. 7.
-sas (gen.sg.)
a. rich; f.pl. rich
ones ( cows, waters,
revant
verses
RV.
I.30.13
al-
raikva
13^
luding to a
man).
vatyas
cert.
n/II
Sa- roga
disease.
ni.
-gam
(notn.-acc.pl.f.)
roman n.
-mani
II.lS.I,2.
raikva m.nm.pr.
-vas (nom.sg.)
(acc.sg.)
VII. 26.
2.
IV. 1.3,
Jiair.
^^III.
(acc.pl.)
13.1.
a. rcd^ reddish.
-tarn (nom.sg.n.) II 1. 1.
rohita
5,8.
vam
VI.4. 1, 2,3,4,6.
4,
Tambhuka
alapayisyas (cond.intl.act.
IV. 2. 5.
sg.caus.)
I.
pi.)
a.
salt ; n. salt.
VIII.3.1,2.
-bhante
tvith a teiid-
VI I. 2 2.
a.
I3.l(2t.),2(3t.).
nena
pres.ind.mid.
VI.9.2.
(instr.sg.)
IV.
17.7.
I.io.6(2t.).
alabhe (impf.ind.mid.sg.)
IV.4.2,4.
labdhva grd.
VII. 2 2.1
-gam
(-upii
lipyate (pres.ind.pass.sg.)
V.io.io.
touch.,
charge
blame.
upalabheta (pres.opt.mid.
sg.)
VIII.
I4.l(2t.).
v/lip smear., stain.
(2t.).
'with.,
(acc.sg.)
II.22.3,4(2t.).
v/li
clings
stick,
settle,
stoop, hide.
|-vi
cling
doxvii,
to,
settle
disappear, melt.
loman
\/lup
vllinam
6,7,8.
VI. 13. 1,
VIII.12.6.
sg.n.)
-kan
in
pieces^
bit, drop ;
adv. slightly.
instr. as
II. 2 2,
(instr.sg.)
9-4(3t-);
-kam
I.S.5,7
II-24-
I3-I-
^^3-3; 4-1
2,595i5-
VII. 3. 1
4.2
VIII.i.6(2t.).
(
acc.sg.
(2t.),7(2t.).
I-8.5
II. 22. 2;
7.1;
14.1.
VIII.3-3.5; ^-S-
-kasya (gen.sg.)
7(2t.)
VII.4.2.
-ke(loc.sg.)
III. 14. 1.
1.9.3,4(41.).
IV.5.3
4; 7.4; 8.4;
2;
-kau
;
13.2.
6.
II. 2;
12.
VIII.6.
8.4.
-kas (nom.pl.)
12.6.
III.
I4-3-
IV.
(gen.pl.)
VIII.4.1.
17.8.
(loc.pl.) 11.2.1,3;
IV.
III. 13. 7.
17.1,2.
V.3.7; 18.
24.2. VII. 25.2(21.).
15.4(21.).
1
VIILi.6(2t.); 4.3;
lokaksit
a.
5.
dzvellinir in the
world or
heaveti.
-ite (dat.sg.)
-idbhyas
I.6.S
lokadvara
11.24.5,9.
II.
(dat.pl.)
7.
n.
gate of the
world or heaven.
-ram (nom. -acc.sg.)
II.
24.4,8,12,13. VIII.6.5.
lokin
a.
the
possessing
{best^ xvorld.
-ki
V.1.3.
(acc.dii.)
8.1
(abl.pl.)
24.14.
I.S.5,
III. 13.6
9.1.
(3t.).
H-
^-4;
4-
III. 13.6.
24.5,9,14.
VII. 3.1;
VIII.7.2,3;
-kebhyas
-kesu
en.
kas (nom.sg.)
S.I.
IV.
-kanam
5-
10.8.
11.
9. 2.
23.3.
74;
1.
111.16.2,4,6.
m. particle,
gena
17.2;
21.
1.
(acc.pl.)
7.2;
5-3; 6-4;
(unaug.aor.ind.
mid.sg.)
le^a
II.2.3
(pass.ppl.iiom.
v/lup break.
tear
(-vi
vilopsi
133
-ma
II. 17. 2.
(nom.sg.)
13.2.
II.
9.1.
loha
134
v/vac
-mabhyas
loha
a.
reddish j
n.
copper^
iron^ metal.
haul
lohita
nom.-acc.sg.n.
ment.
copper.^
VIII.
-tas (nom.sg.m.)
6.1.
VI.
5.2.
tasya
(instr.sg.) VI.1.5.
vaktavya grdv.
to be spo-
ken.
-yas (nom.pl.)
II. 22. 5
x/vac speak^tell^say^claifn.
uvaca (perf.ind.act.sg.)
12.1,2;
(2t.),2;
i4.i(2t.),2;
15.l(2t.),2;
3;
9.1,3;
10.2,3
II.
i(2t.),2,3,5,7,9;
12.3.
III.11.4;
17.6.
IV. I.
2.5(3t.); 3.6; 4.
2,3.4(2t.),5(3t-); 5-2;
6.3; 7-3; S.3; 9-3; 10.
2,3(2t.),5;
14-3; 15-1-
V. 1.7,8,9,10,11,13(21.),
i4(2t.);
3-^
2.1,2,3;
4,5.6(2t.),7(2t.);
1.4,
l6.l(2t.),
iS.i.
I7.i(2t.),2;
5.4;
4;
(2t.);
13.1
VI. 1. 1, 3, 7; 2.2;
8.2,3 (2t.), 4
(2t.),4,6,7,S,io,ii
VIII.
5,7(2t.);
(4t.),5(2t.),6,7(3t.),8
1.5.2,4;
(gen.sg.)
6.1.
2;
(3t-)-
5^7;
n.
red;
-tam (nom.sg.n.)
7-
nina
a.
blood.
10.3;
11.2,3; 12.2,
VIII.3.4;
24.2.
3,4(2t.);
(2t.),4;
7.1,2,
8.i,2(2t.),3
9.2(2t.),3(2t.);
II.
io.i,3(2t.),4(3t.);
i,2(2t.),3(2t.);
12.6
(2t.); 15.1.
ucatus
(perf.ind.act.du.)
VIIL7.3;
S.1,3.
ucus (perf.ind.act.pl.)
8.1
12.2.
I,
IV. 10.4,5
vatsa \''vad
(2t.)
2.1,2
V. 1.7, 12;
14.1.
avocam
1.6.
135
niruktas
(pass.ppl.nom.
II. 22. 1.
sg.)
(aor.ind.act.sg.)
III-i5-4.5(2t.),6(2t.),
f-pra
speak forth.,
in-
struct., address.
provaca (perf.ind.act.sg.)
7(3t.)_
cat (aor.intl.act.sg.)
I.
can
(aor.ind.act.pl.)
IW
(aor.ind.mid.sg.)
V.3.4.
^
vaksyami (f ut.ind.act.sg.)
VII.i.i.
IV.14.3.
avaksyam
yan
cond.ind.act.pl.
(nm.ag.nom.sg'.)
IV.6.1 7.1 ; 8.1 ; 14. i.
;
iiktas (pass.ppl.nom.sg.)
I V.I. 4,6.
(pass.ppl.nom.sg.
VI.8.6.
tasya
grd.
6,10,15.
1.9.3.
11.24.
III. 17.6.
V.
II.22.3.
sg.)
say
f-abhyanii
reference
vivaktuni
ivith
IV.4.5.
inf.)
-sas
abhyanilktani
nom.sg.n.)
(-nis utter.,
(pass. ppl.
III. 12.5.
explain.
as
V.3.5.
(nom.sg.)
III. 15.
2.
-sam
(acc.sg.)
III. 15.2
(2t.).
speak., call.
vadati
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
VII.i7.i(3t.).
1.2.3.
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
II. 24.1.
-dama
to.
iftfortn.
(m.acc.sg.
-danti
2-3-
pratyuvaca (perf.ind.act.
IV.1.3; 2.3.
sg-)
x/vad
I.ii.5,7,9(2t.).
tva
IV. 10.2.
(-prati ajiswer.
(-vi explain.,
vakta
n.)
-kta (nm.ag.noin.sg.) V.
VI.1.7.
-tarn
paripravocan (unaug.aor.
(cond.ind.act.
V.3.5.
sg-)
III.11.4.
ind.act.pl.)
14.2,3.
cathas
VIII.S.4.
j-paripra reproach.
11.4,6,8,
(pres.subj.act.pl.)
I.S.I,
-det (pres.opt.act.sg.) V.
II. 6.
vadha^varsa
136
-datam (imv.act.du.)
I.
vadha m.
8.2.
tioit,
datos
(pres.ppl.act.gen.
1.8.2.
du.)
-dantas
act
V. 1.9,10,1
nom.pl.)
1,
9.4
I
defeat
iti
speak-
ing.
ativadati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
n, bird.
vayas
21.1.
8.1
w.
vayas
age
VII. 2.1
7.
10. 1.
food, strength,
-si (loc.sg.)
VII.i6.i(2t.).
li.
-yansi (nom.-acc.pl.)
avadas (impf.ind.act.sg.)
f-ati
10.2,4.
1.5;
pres. p p
slayer, destrucstroke.
111.16.2,4,
dani
6.
(pres.subj.act.sg.)
A^II.i6.i.
vara n. choice, boon.
f-abhi
speak
allude
to.
to^
greet
-ram
(acc.sg.)
abhyuvada (perf.ind.act,
IV. 1.2,8; 2.1,4;
sg.)
-has (nom.sg.)
varuna m.nm.pr.
nas
5.1
I
yude (perf.ind.mid.sg.)
IV.14.2.
-nena
-nasya (gen.sg.)
re-
vartani
-nim
interrupt,
sume speaking.
sg.)
(-vi
(instr.sg.)
1.
12.5.
III.8.
1.3-
VI.9.3;
10.2.
(nom.sg.)
14.1.
voice^
V.3.6.
IV.16.2,4.
discuss, dispute.
f.
felloe,
II. 22.1.
wheel-
track, road.
(acc.sg.) IV. 16.3.
-ni (nom.-acc.du.)
IV.
16.1,4.
samudire
pi.)
(perf.ind.mid.
IV. 10.4.
man!
(acc.du.)
IV. 15.
I.
varsa
n.
varsagana
son^ycar /
f.
rainy sea-
son^ rain.
5.2
6.2.
Wh.Gr. 8S3
rightly)
avatsva (aor.ind.act.du.)
VIII.7.3.
VII.4.2.
VII.
(gen.sg.n.)
vatsyami
(fiit.iiul.act.sg.)
IV.4.3.
4.2.
II.5.1
16.1.
sani
137
VIII.7.3.
sam (nom.-acc.sg.n.) V.
sasya
vasistha
III.
16.
IV. 10.
,3,5.
VIII.7.3; 9.3(2t.);
I.
10.
V.10.5.
vivatsami
(pres.ind.act.
IV.4.I.
sg.dcs.)
vasayanti
-nam
IV.4.5.
(acc.sg.)
avasan (pres.ppl.act.nom.
varsa^ata n. century.
-tam
III. 16.7
(acc.sg.)
(2t.).
v'vas
siay.^
oneself
dxuell^
devote
to.
santu
1
V.3.
VIII.9.3;
(imv.act.pl.)
set
out^
go
or
provasa (perf.ind.act.sg.)
V.
V. 1.8,9, 10,
prosya grd.
II.
(vbl.f.acc.sg.,
Wh.RVF.
wrongly),
see pravasa.
-santam
acc.sg. m.)
IV. 3. 6.
(perf.ind.act.sg.)
I.io.i. IV.io.i.
9.3;
V.10.9.
(-P''3-
pravasam
I I,
1.5.
uvasa
sg.)
IV.4.5.
VI. 1. 1.
10.4:
dxvell abroad.
vasa (imv.act.sg.)
7.
(pres.ind.act.
III. 16. 1.
pi. cans.)
j-a inhabit., enter.
10.4;
VIII.
8.5.
ii.3(2t.).
usatus (perf.ind.act.dll.)
'VIII.7.3.
avastam
vasana n. clothing.
-nena (instr.sg.)
(aor.ind.act.du.,
-tas
1
(nom.sg.)
II'5-i
6. 1,
vasistha
a.
supl.
most ex-
vasu
138
thas
V.
(^uom.sg'.m.)
vac
blow or
[-ud
iidvayati
1.2,13.
go
out.
pres.ind.act.
vasu
a.
excellent^
good^
m.
the
wealthy ^
pi.
Vasus (cert. gods),
1 1. 24.
-savas (nom.pl.)
6. III.6.1
sunam
I.
i6.i(2t.),2.
II. 24.
(gen.pl.)
111.6.3,4;
vasudhana
16.2.
gi'anting or
containing wealth.
nas
a.
tis
(nom.sg.)
(2t.);
V.16.2
(5t.).
IV.i5.i(2t.);
2.3
adhyudham
(pass.ppl.
nom.sg. n.)
I.6.i(2t.),
2(2t.),3(2t.),4(3t.),5
(2t.);
7.l(2t.),2(2t.),
3(2t.),4(2t.).
f-apa retttovc.
apohya grd.
|-prati
V.24.1.
carry towards
nom.pl.)
va blow.
14.3
VI.
io.2(8t.);
15.2(61.)
VIII.
24.1.
6.5(2t.);
i.4(2t.);
S.
4(2t.); i2.3(3t.).
n.
-yam
dialogue (a
work),
(nom.-acc.sg.)
2-1
voice^
7-1-
word.
(nom.sg.)
1.1.2,5
(2t.);
2.
4A7;
7-i(2t-);
II. 7.
4.
\W.
11;
3.3(21.),
13-2,
11.
8.3;
III.i2.i(2t. );
23.4.
IV.3.3;
13-3;
^8.2,3.
16.1,
V.i.2,S(2t.),i3;
7.1
21.2.
2.
VI.5.3,4;
7-6; S.6;
6.4,5;
VII.2.i(4t.)
15.1,
26.1.
VIII. 12.4.
or azvay.
pratyudhas
i4.i(4t.). VII.3.i(3t.);
vac f.
vak
place
7ipon.
1.5
io.7(6t.).
9-3(^t.)
V.2.S(3t.); 9.
16.3,5.
i(2t.)
1.2,4;
>/vah carry.
\/i
III.
cert.
1S.2.
1.12.1,3.
II. 19.2.
vasti m. bladder.
prota.
(pass. ppl.
VIII. 3. 2.
vacam
(acc.sg.)
8.2.
2; 3-1
V.3.6.
;
4-1
1.2.3;
VIL2.1,
;
5-^-
vacamyama vasara
IV.i6.2.
-ca (instr.sg.)
V. 1.9,10,11.
-cas
13.4.
1. 1. 2;
3.6,7;
U.S. 1,3.
V.I.
VII.3.3(3t.);
15.
3.1.
V.
21.2.
a.
checkhtg
7ncre
071
dis-
words^
mere ly
in
nam (nom.sg.)
4^,6;
VI. i.
4.1,2,3,4.
pleasant^ ^co^^y
n. good^ wealth.
(nom.-acc.pl.) IV.
derivedfrom
-yam
n.
a cert.
(nom.-acc.sg.n.) II.
IV.3.i(3t.),
17. 1.
1.
VII. 2. 1
yuna
V.10.5;
7.1
14.
i.i.
III.
(instr.sg.)
II. 24.9.
-yave (dat.sg.)
yos
II.
(abl.-gen.sg.)
IV. 17. 2.
22.1.
yau
V.23.2.
(loc.sg.)
of Varuna.
a.
-nam
II. 22.
(acc.sg.n.)
vava postp.emph.pcl.
ly^
1.
Just.
3.
stire-
III.
1.
12.2,3,4,7,8,9;
11.5;
3.4;
1-1,2,3,4,5;
6,1
VI. 1
14.3.
10.5;
3.1,3;
1.3;
7.1
IV.
V.
4.1;
8.1.
VII.
13.2.
I5-3-
wind., air.
-yus (nom.sg.)
6.3(3t.);
III. 15.
(acc.sg.)
2;
5.1
13.1,2.
vayu m.
-yum
13.7; i6.i(2t.),3,5.
i5-2(2t.),3(2t.).
vamadevya a.
Vamadeva;
Saman.
1.3;
I.
a.
mani
23.2(2t.).
VIII.
12.2.
varuna
name.
vama
V.5.I; 10.5;
VIL4.2.
18.4.
2(3t.),6.
VIII.7.3.
-ci(loc.sg.) II.S.1,3.
vacamyama
III.13.5; 151S.2.
2;
(abl.-gen.sg.,nom.-
acc.pl.)
139
13.
1.
9.1,2;
1. 2;
(2t.),2;
1-3-7;
11.20.
I3.I
14.1,2;
15.1.
VIII. 1. 1, 2;
vasara
a.
10.1,2;
12.1,2;
12. 1.
matuti7ial^ early.
vasava
140
-ram
s/i
III.
(acc.sg.n.)
vid
yam
17.7.
vasava
of the Vasus.
a.
-vain (acc.sg.n,)
vasas
n.
II. 24. 3.
-ray a
(2t.).
vasteya
in the bladder
a.
VII.
20.1
21.
(nom.sg.n.)
i.
a. victoriozis.
IV. i.
(dat.sg.)
4,6.
vijnatr m. discemer.
-ta (nom.sg.)
III.
VII.S.i
or cyst,
yam
19.1
V.2.2 vijitvara
(nom.-acc.sg.)
VIII.
(nom.sg.f.)
18.1
garment.
17.1
22.1.
-ya
VII.
(nom.sg.n.)
16.1
19.2.
f.
~\
-nam(nom.-acc.sg.) VII.
7.i(2t.),2(2t.);
catiofi^ prodttction.
VI. 1.4,
-ras (nom.sg.)
5^6; 4-1.2,3,4.
f.
vicikitsa
tmcertainty.,
(2t.)
nena
vijara
ras (nom.sg.)
a.
VII.
VII. 7. 2
S.I.
(gen.sg.)
VII.
7.2.
free froni
htuiger.
sas (nom.sg.)
VIII. i. vitta
5; 7-^3na)
vijijnasitavya
( >/ j
that
one
mtist
grdv.des.
wish understood.
(abl.sg.)
nasya
not aging.
vijighatsa
(instr.sg.)
(2t.);
III. 1 4.4.
17.1
26.1.
7.l(2t.).
-nat
doubt.
(nom.sg.)
discernment.,
knowledge.
twenty.
a.
n.
vijnana
VIII. 7.1,3.
VII.
found., gotteii-^ n.
possession., wealth.
a.
tam
(nom.sg.n.) V.3.6.
-tasya (gen.sg.)
\/i vid know.
V.3.6.
vedani (pres.subj.act.sg.)
1.8.7,8.
x/2 vid
vidyat (pres.ojDt.act.sg.)
V.2.8 ;
IL9.2 ; 24.2.
VIL5.2.
3.4.
viddhi
VI. 1
8.7,8.
1.2.
III. 16.7
24.2.
IV.5.3(2t.);
4.
;
7.4(2t.)
II.2(2t.)
VII.
i.i.
dvansas
nom.pl.)
19.
6.4
8.4(2t.)
I2.2(2t.)
V.24.2,3.
I3.2(2t.).
(perf.ind.act.sg-.)
V.3.2(3t.),3(2t.).
veda
(2t.)
I.
(imv.act.sg.)
vettha
141
perf .ppl.act.
V.I 8. 1. VI.
4-5(
perf.ind.act.sg.
3.1; 6.7;
I.i.io(2t.);
13.4(2!.).
II. II. 2
14.2;
13-
12.
-dusam (perf.ppl.act.gen.
VIII.6.5.
pi.)
avedisus (aor.ind.act.pl.)
VI.'i.7.
15.
vedisyante
24.16(31.). III.6.3; 7.
3; S.3; 9.3; 10.3; II.
avedisyam (cond.ind.act.
3;
-yan
12.9;
13.1,2,3,4,5,
6(2t.),8(2t.)
16.7;
15.2(21.);
i8.3,4,5,6(2t.).
3.8
IV.i.4(2t.),6(2t.);
4.2(2t.),4(2t.);
(2t.);
V.I. 1,2,3,4,
i5'2,3'4-
VIII.
VII.5.2.
14.2.
perf.ind.act.pl.
V.io.i.
VI.9.2
lo.i,
2.
VII. 25. 2.
-dvan (perf.ppl.act.nom.
sg.)
7;
1.1.7,8; 2.14; 3.
4-5;
7-7'9;
9-A-
6.2
7.2
8.3
10.
(fut.ind.mid.
1.9.3.
V.3.5.
sg.)
(
cond.ind.act.pl.
VI.1.7.
vidita
(pass.ppl.nom.sg.
IV.9.3.
vividisami (pres.ind.act.
f.)
sg.des.)
I.I I.I.
vedayante (pres.ind.mid.
VIII. 7. 3.
pi. cans. )
vidam
i2.4(3t.):5-
vidus
pi.)
2.13.
(vbl.f.acc.sg.)
I.
VI.4.5,6(3t.),7.
a/2 vidjifid.
vindanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
VIIL3.2.
date
(pres.ind.mid.sg.)
VIII.3.2;
-deyus
5.1,2.
(pres.opt.act.pl.)
VIII.3.2.
viraj
vidya
142
II. 34.
-da(imv.act.sg.)
data (imv.act.pl.)
II. 24.
I.
V.5.I
VII.12.1.
1
viveda (perf.ind.act.sg.)
(aor.ind.act.sg.)
I V.I. 7,8.
vittva grd.
vidyate
IV. 15.
V. 10.2.
5.
4.4(2t.).
-uti (loc.sg.)
IV, 13. 1.
V.22.2.
1.4. 3.
(pres.ind.pass.
VIII.1.2.
sg.)
(acc.sg.)
VI.13.1.
avidam
VIIL1.3;
Arf
-utam
14.
22.2(2t.).
-udbhis
I
(instr.pl.)
VII.
I.I.
VIII.4.3;
pi.)
-vindate
(prcs.ind.mid.
VIII.5.1,3.
sg.)
VIII. 1.6;
-vidya grd.
f.
sci-
knowledge^
ence.
21. 1
(acc.sg.)
I.4.2.
IV.17.3.
(instr.sg.)
-yayas
a.
(acc.sg.)
I.i.io.
(gen.sg.)
IV.
f.
13.
release
m.
death.
viraj
a.
7-i'3-
radia?tt^
ruling j
Iightni7ig.
IV. 7. 3;
1.
Jlashing;
-(nom.sg.)
VIII. 1
fro)n.
-sas (nom.sg.) VII. 26.2.
vimrtyu a. not subject to
17.8.
vidyut
II. 22.1.
ruin.
IV.9.3. vipramoksa
V.3.7-
yaya
-di (acc.sg.n.)
II.
1.1.9,10.
23.3.
-yam
9am
(iiom.sg.)
division^ parti-
vina^a m. destruction^
12.6.
5.2; 7.1,3;
vidya
f.
tion.
5.4.
ter.
f.
bright.,
a cert, me-
virajya
-at
1.
(nom.sg.)
13.2.
V19
upopavivc^a
IV.3.8.
n.
virajya
act.sg.)
i.S ; 6.1
wide sovereignas
(dat.sg.
tarn
asunder;
-pan
pravi9ati
differ e7it
II. 15.2.
(acc.pl.)
sg.)
pravive9a
(perf.ind.act.
V. 1.8,9, 10,1
-avi9ya grd.
(instr.sg.)
resort
to.
anupravi9ya grd.
proof
j'
ep a rat io n
VI.9.2.
settle^ enter.
samvi9ati ( pres.ind.act.
V.2.8.
sg.)
f-abhisam assemble at
or around.
anvavlganti (pres.ind.act.
pi.)
|-upa
abhisarhvi9ati
VIII.1.5.
approach^
sit
-9anti
II.
side.
(pres.ind.
III.6.3; 7.3;
act.sg.)
doxv7i.
upavi9yagrd.
VI. 3.
2,3-
iiisight.
(acc.sg.)
1.
1.4.4,5.
enter after^
|-anupra
VIII.
9.2.
kam
(impf.ind.act.
1.4.2,3.
sg.)
VI II. 7.
12.4.
penetrate.
pres.ind.act.
pravi9am
8.4.
viveka m.
to-
I.4-5-
sg.)
virocana m.um.pr.
nas
(nom.sg.)
-ncna
ejiter^
hpra
varicolored^ mul-
tiform^ of
kinds.
1.
-avi9ya grd.
4,5,6,8.
v/vIq
down
1.8.2.
act.pl.)
IV. 17.
(acc.sg.n.)
a.
IV.
S.i.
samupavivifus (perf.ind.
rent
a.
w. failure^ disaster.
7.1
gether.
inf.)
II.34.S.
virista
perf.ind.
I.io.S.
[-samupa'jr//
ty.
yaya
virupa
H3
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
III.6.2 ; 7.2,
I.11.5.
he-
S.2
vi^
f.
9.2
10.2.
vi9oka
144
esp.
-plc^
\/2 vr
third caste
member there of
or
14.
(nom.sg.m.
VIII.
!)
6.6.
visphuliuga m. spark.
(vaigya).
9am
van
VIII.
(gcii.pl.)
1.
gas (nom.pl.)
5.1
6.1
7.1
V.4.1
;
Vina f. lute.
vigoka a. without grief.
kas (nom.sg.) VIII. i.
-nayam (loc.sg.)
Vira m.
5; 7-i'3-
kam(nom.sg.n.)
vigva
II. 10.5.
a. all.
III.
ve (nom.pl.)
1.
II.
13.2.
7.6.
III. 13.6.
n. manliness.,
miglit.
III.i.
yam (nom.sg.)
3.,
15.1.
1.
7}ian, hero.
-ras (nom.sg.)
virya
vam (nom.sg.n.)
S.i.
'7^
-..,
-yena
oo*
^.^
4.-
(instr.sg.)
C ^
^.~,.
IV. 17.
4.5,6,8.
34.16.
vebhyas
II.
(dat.pl.)
a.
Viryavant
strong., effect-
ive.
24.14.
vesam
1.
-nti (nom.pl.n.)
3. 5.
(gen.pl.) II.24.1.
a.
vattara
compar.
vigvatas adv. on all sides. virya
stronger.
III.13.7.
a.
vigvarupa
all-colored.,
manifold.
V.13.1
18.2.
V.
(nom.sg.n.)
v/i vr cover.
apavrnu (imv.act.sg.)
make
serve.,
|-pari
ready.
prepare
(food),
parivisyamanau
ppl.pass.acc.du.)
(-vi
uncover.
vivrtas (pass.ppl.nom.pl.)
II.22.5.
pres. v/2 vr choose.
IV.
vrne
11.23.
3^5a.
II.
34.4,8,12,13.
13.1.
x/vis he active^
visvanc
I.i.
lo.
-pas (nom.sg.)
-pam
ram (nom.sg.n.)
Q-oimr asunder
or in all directions.
-nimahe
pi.)
(pres.ind.mid.
V.3.7.
vrka v/vrt
nithas (pres.opt.mi'd.sg.)
'V.3.6.
mta
(pres.opt.mid.sg.)
1. 10.6.
avrsi
I.I 1.2,
(nom.sg.)
V.3.2.
-teya (pres.opt.mid.sg.)
IV.4.5.
avrttas (pass.ppl.nom.pl.)
II. 2.3.
tree.
sasya (gen.sg.)
2(2t.)
VI. 9.
I.I.
-sanani (gcn.pl.)
f-parya turn
round or
aivay.
paryavartayatat
VI. 9.
I.
pres.-
fut.imv.act.sg.caus.
I.
5.2.
shun.
|-sama
go home
student)
varjayet (pres.opt.act.sg.
II. 22. 1.
caus.)
live^ exist, be
spend
dis-
act.sg.caus.)
life.
vartate (pres.ind.mid.sg.)
1.1.9.
IV. 10.
I.
-van
IV.3.2,3.
sg-)
v/vrt turn^
(of
caus.
samavartayati (pres.ind.
f-sam approp7'iate.
sarhvrnkte (pres.ind.mid.
(pres.ppl.act.caus.
IV.io.i.
nom.sg.)
[-abhisama returti^ go
home
(of student),
abhisama vrty a
grd.
van-
"
-tamanas (pres.ppl.mid.
nom.sg.) IV. 16.3,5.
-tayan (pres.ppl.act.caus.
VIII. 1 5. 1.
nom.sg.)
turn
|-a
round^ invert^
return.
avartate
VIII.
I5.l(2t.).
tante
(pres.ind.mid.pl.)
2.2.
10.2.
caus.
IV. 1 7.9.
sg.)
IV.i5.6(2t.).
aor.ind.mid.sg.
145
VIII.15.1.
f-ni return., cease.,
ish.
nivartante (pres.ind.mid.
pi.)
V.10.5. VIII.4.2.
pres.ind.mid.
10
develop.
x/vrs
146
niravar tata
mid.sg.)
impf
. i
III. 19.
nd
1.
vai
-dan
7-3A
-danam
(gen.pl.)
1.2,4;
2.1; 7.1.
ward.
pravrttas (pass.ppl.nom. vedi
V.I 3.2.
sg.)
ap^roach^
^-sam
be
present.
sarfavartate (pres.ind.mid.
v/vrs rain.
15. 1.
4.1;
VI. 2.4.
-santam ( pres.ppl.act.
II. 15.2.
acc.sg.)
sisyati
(fut.ind.act.sg.)
VII.II.l(3t.).
-sayati
pravarsanti (pres.ind.act.
V.10.6.
pi.)
f.
rain.
11.3.1,2.
Veda.
-das
2.1
7.1.
VIII. 15. 1,
(nom.pl.)
(2t.).
14.
1.
indeed.
I.i.5,6(2t.),7,S(2t.); 2.1,
14;
4.2,
3.i(2t.),2,3;
10.3,4; ii.i,2(2t.),
II.7.1
12.2.
10.4,5; 24.5,9,15,
1 1 1. 5.4
5-2.34(2t.);
4-2,3;
I
8.1
7.1
11.2,3;
3,4,7(2t.),8
9.1
6.
10.
i2.i(3t.),2,
;
13.1,6; 15.
4; 16.7.
IV.3.1,4,6,7,8; 5.3; 6.3;
16.1
9.3; 10.
i7.9(3t.),io; 18.
1
S.3;
7-3;
chamber.
n. hoicse,
-tnu (loc.sg.)
ve^man
16.
II. 3. 2.
vrsti
5^7.9
(pres.ind.act.sg.
caus.)
VII.
f.
sacrijicial bed (a
slight excavation cov-
1.1,2;
varsati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
11.3.1,3;
VI.13.2.
sg.)
VI. 1.2
(acc.pl.)
8.
V.I.I (2t.),2,3,4,5,i5;
2.
5;
12.
13.1;
14.1;
vaiyaghrapadya - vyadhi
15.
T 2
16.1
17.
iS.
vaigvadeva
147
-vam
(nom.-acc.sg.n.) II.
24.11,13.
(2C.).
4.1,2,3;
8.1
12.1,2;
13.1
I
24.1
VIII.1.3;
22.1
25.2
23.
26.1.
14.
16.
15.2;
V. 11
m. )
13.2;
16.2;
14.
17.2;
1.
vidh
v/vyadh,
pierce,
hurt, infect.
vividhus (pref.ind.act.pl.)
belonging
n.
viddhas
to tJic
a cert. Sa-
sg.)
-dham
inan,
(nom.-acc.sg.n.) II.
n.)
(pass.ppl.nom.
1.3.2.
VIII.4.2.
(pass.ppl.nom.sg.
1.2.4,5,6.
-dha (pass.ppl.nom.sg.f.)
16.1,2.
(a.) n. a cert.
vairupa
I-2-2,3,4,5,6.
a.
ViraJj
-jam
V.12.1
15.
lS.l(2t.).
16.'..
vairaja
( acc.sg.
3;
5.3;
5,6;
2,4,6; 12.2;
3.3(2t. ),4,5
vaiyaghrapadya m.nm.pr.
-yaya (dat.sg.) V.2.3.
-ya (voc.sg.)
V.14.1
14.1
17.1.
-ram
4.2(2t.);
(2t.);
to
cojnpletc^ uni-
-ras (nom.sg.)
2 r.i
mcn^
versal.
I.I
13.1
i5.i,2(6t.),4; 16.
17. 1 ; iS.i ;
19.1
20.1
I
9.1,2;
(3t.),2;
14.1
all
5.2(2t.),3; 7.
common
a.
of the All-
a.
Sa-
1.2.3.
vyaghra m.
man.
pam (ncm.-acc.sg.)
tiger.
-ras (nom.sg.)
II.
VI.9.3
10.2.
15.1,2.
nim
'
(acc.sg.)
V.10.7.
10.3.
vyana
148
vrihiyava
M.M. back-breathing).
-nas (nom.sg.)
III. 13.
V.20.1.
2.
-nam
pravavraja (perf.ind.act.
VIII. to.i
1 1.
sg.)
;
I.
-vrajatus
(acc.sg.) I.3.3(3t.),
pravrajis (aor.ind.act.sg.)
VIII.9.2
5-
V.20.1.
-naya (dat.sg.)
-ne (loc.sg.) V.20.2.
n.
vyavartana
u r ?t i n g
apart., pat-ting
(of
-ne (acc.du.)
vyusti
V.3.2.
dawning ;
f.
grace.,
III. 13.4.
(nom.sg.)
endowed
a.
vyustimant
xuith beauty.
VIII.8.4.
.
(imv.act.sg.)
sg.)
IV.16.3,5.
|-ud leave
udvavraja
sg.)
-f pra
der.
1.
(-aniisam
go along
anusaiiivraja
rule
n. will., decree.,
of life., duty.
tam
(nom.sg.)
13.2;
II.
1.2;
14.3;
15.
2;
v/vraQC cut
hew
up.,
down.,
(perf.ind.act.
Jorth.^
|-pari
cut about.,
dis-
parivrknas
pass. ppl.
VIII. 9. 1,2.
nom.sg.)
-ne ( pass. ppl. loc.sg. )
VIII.9.1,2.
vrihi m. rice^ rice-grain.
home.
12.1.
go
(imv.act.
IV.4.5.
sg-)
fgure., cripple.
VI.
14.2.
-jan
fell.
pres ind.act.pl. )
VIII.i.6(2t.).
ja
to.
vrajatas (pres.ind.act.du.)
go forth
abhipravavraja (
VIII. 7. 2.
act.sg.)
12.2;
-janti
1.2.
perf .ind.
vrata
beauty.
-man
\-Q}a\\v^Y2^
10.3
after., follow.
paths),
-tis
(perf.ind.act.
VIII.8.3.
du.)
wan-
vas (nom.pl.)
V.10.6.
\/qa.hs
Qagvant
149
9
v/Qans c]iant^ ^i^^St fraisc.
<pansati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
x/^ak be able.
a9akam
(aor.ind.act.sg'.)
3.
VIII.
(abl.sg.n.)
^''9aln be
qtiiet.,
cease.
(-"pa cease.,
(aor.ind.act.pl.)
V.
1.
1.8,9,10,1
II.
a.
garana
IV.
-tasya (gen.sg.)
3.1.
protecting ;
(acc.sg.n.)
3.4(2t.)gakuni m. bird.
VI. 8. 2. Qarad f. autumn.
-nis (nom.sg.)
-rat (nom.sg.)
-nibhyas (abl.pl.) V.2.
n.
II. 22.
II5-i
16.].
1.
a. able^
^akvan
capable,'
f.
meter (of
7x8 or 4x14 syll.) and
-vari a
cert,
varyas
(nom.-acc.
pi. f.)
m.
peg ;
-kuna
pointed stake^
(instr.sg.)
II. 23.4.
m.-f.)
ram (nom.-acc.sg.)
12.3,4.
V.I. 7.
13.1.
6.4,5;
VIII. 3.4;
12.3.
26.
VIII.
9.1,2.
-re
(loc.sg.)
VIII.9.1,2;
III.
VIII.
12.1,3;
10-1.3;
8-5;
-rasya (gen.sg.)
beam.ijiber.
indecl.
garira n. body.
-rat (abl.sg.)
11.17.1,2.
Qanku
out.
protection., refuge.
-nam
1.8.
go
upa^amyati (prcs.ind.act.
sg.)
n. ivag-on^ ca7'.
Qakata
1.
13.1.
V.3.5-
kata
-lat
1.1.9.
VII L
-lam (acc.sg.n.)
III. 13.8.
12.3.
n. funeral obsequies.
-yam
(acc.sg.)
IV, 1 5.5.
2.
Vin.6.6.
QaQVant a. ever repeating
-tani (nom.-acc.pl.) IV.
itself; n.acc. as adv.
2.1,2.
Qabala
a.
brinded.
repeatedly., ahvays.
vat (acc.sg.n.) VI. 13.2.
9akha
150
^akha
arm.
VI. 1
(acc.sg.)
f.
am
\/i
brancJi^
as (nom.pl.)
anu9isyat
1.2.
V.2.3.
-9a9asa (perf.ind.act.sg.)
IV. 9. 3
III. 14.
-yas (nom.sg.)
13.1
1.1
(pass.ppl.nom.
designate^
delep'ate.
peaceful.
abhy anu9asani
subj.act.sg.)
(pros.
V.11.3.
or satisfied heart.
Qilaka m.nm.pr.
-kas (nom.sg.)
yas (nom.sg.) VIII. 8.
6.
4; 9.2 10.1,3 ii-ijS.
yau (nom.du.m.) VIII. v/^is leave.
f-ati
8.3.
^arkaraksya m.nm.pr.
yas ( nom.sg. ) V.
-ya (voc.sg.)
1 . i ,
V.15.1.
galavatya m.nm.pr.
yas (nom.sg.)
1.8.1,3,6.
ya (voc.sg.)
1.8.8.
chaste)!.^
f.)" VI.7.3,6.
-syate (pres.Ind.pass.sg.)
II. 10.3.
Wh.
VI.7.5.
]-anii
mand^
V.
f^fall.,
instrzict^
com-
perish.
atigiyate
sg.)
indicate.
VI.7.3.
sg-)
-tarn (pass.ppl.acc.sg.m.)
VIII. 1.4.
parifistas (pass.ppl.nom.
direct^
gadhi (imv.act.sg.,
leave remaining.
V.15.1.
(acc.sg.)
v/as, ^is
order.
I.S. 1,3,
yam
14.2.
[-abhyanu
quieted^
12.1
V.3.4(2t.).
sg-)
a.
(jistas
4(2t.).
^adhi, see \/9as.
ful
(pres.opt.act.
IV. 14.2.
sg.)
^andilya m.nm.pr.
ganta (\/5am)
(pres.ind.mid.
111.12,2.
-yante (pres.ind.mid.pl.)
111.12.3,4.
\/z 91
\/2
pres.ind.mid.sg.
impf.ind.mid.
III.19.1.
sg.)
9ayitva grd.
gukla
v/qus
V.9.1.
6.1.
lam (nom.sg.n.)
1-6.5,
III.2.3.
VI.4.1,2,3,4,6.
VI.ii.2(4t.).
dry up or axvay
(or in
act.pl.)
6.1.
a.
-kaya
calyx of
young ^udra
from
bud and
contrast
of
.'').
ucchusyanti
VIII. guska
-lasya (gen.sg.)
n.
wither.
dry.,
[-ud
7.4(21.).
(pass.jDpl.nom.
V. 10.10.
9usyati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
VIII.
-las (nom.s^;.m.)
QUiiga
9uddhas
sg.)
a. brigJit^ XVkite.
6;
VIIL
15.1.
y/^udh purify.
II.I3.l(2t).
a^ayata
15^
-cau (loc.sg.m.)
rest.
5I //f, sleeps
9ete
gaunaka
ni.
(pros. ind.
IV. 3. 2.
dry.
V.2.3.
tfmn of thefourth
(dat.sg.)
caste.
-(voc.sg.)
IV.2.3,5.
root),
-gam
gena
(instr.sg.)
VI. S.
v/gr criisJi.
4(3t.),6(2t.).
QUC Jianie^
burn^
suffer
pain., grieve.
focami (pres.ind.act.sg.)
VII.1.3.
-cati
pres.ind.act.sg.
VL2.3.
beam
[-ni
burning
down.,
hot.
Jla7ning ;
pure, holy.
break in pieces.
vyagarisyata
(cond.ind.
mid. -pass. sg.) V.15.2.
-kam
(acc.sg.)
VII.1.3.
-kasya (gen.sg.)
VII. II. I.
a.
|-vi
ni90cati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
Quci
VII.
I-3-
gaunaka m.nm.pr.
Ught^
kas
(nom.sg.)
IV. 3.7.
I-9'3-
gauva
^5^
-kam
Qauva
vas
a.
IV. 3. 5.
(acc.sg.)
relating
v/9ru
mam
a9rayata
VIII.
acc.sg. n.)
(impf.ind.mid.
III.1.4;
sg.)
3.3;
3.
3; 4-3; 5-3-
13.1.
mat
sort
I.12.1.
(nom.sg.)
dark.
a. blacky
9yama
mid.
0)1 y
to dogs.
VIII.
(abl.sg.n.)
^ritam
^yamaka m. a cert,
panic grass.
-kat (abl.sg.)
III. 14.3.
viil-
1.
Icci-'i
f-^jp^
against j
mid. rest upon., accus-
millet.,
^yamakatandula m.
III. 15.
n.)
13.1.
ind.
mid.sg.) VI.8.2(2t.).
let-graiji.
III. 14. 3.
-lat (abl.sg.)
gri f beauty ^ bliss j welfare.
ris
(nom.sg.) III. 13.2.
grad indcl. prefix w. "v/dha
riyam (acc.sg.)
III.
have faith.^ trust., believe j see x/dha.
12.9
.
a.
graddha
trusting ;
f.
faith., trust.
-dham
(acc.sg.)
lo.i.
(instr.sg.)
graddhadeva
a.
V.4.2
I.i.io.
inf.)
\/gri
es-
III. 13.
be
learn j
hear.,
pass.
heard of or famed.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
VII. 12. 1
1.2.5.
24.1
-navani
(pres.subj.act.
VIII.12.4.
to
be
-nuyus
(pres.opt.act.pl.)
VII.i3.i(2t.).
(acc.sg.n.)
leati.,
x/gru
sg.)
heard.
-yam
for-
(2t.).
VIII.12.4.
grdv.
-man (nom.sg.)
9rnoti
IV.i.i.
Qravana n. licaring.
naya (dat.sg. as
gravaniya
highly
2.
trusting in
the gods.
-vas (nom.sg.)
beautiful.,
teemed.
VII.19.1.
-dhaya
a.
tutiate^
VII. 19.1.
(nom.sg.)
^rimant
1-2.5.
lay against or
-nvantas
nom.pl.)
pres
ppl. act.
claksna
^ruti
9rosyami
(fut.ind.act.sg.)
1.8.2.
153
IV. 16.
-yan (nom.sg.)
V.i.6(2t.).
5.
most excellent.
III. 13. 8.
m.)
-tarn
(pass.ppl.nom.sg.
III. 13.8.
11.)
(pres.iiicl.inid.
VII.5.2.
pl.des.)
|-a listen to, promise^
make
caus.
knoivii^ in-
voke.
(pres.ind.act.
sg.caus.)
1.1.9.
stand.
(pres.ind.act.
III. 13.8.
sg.)
gufrava
perf.ind.act.
IV. 1.5.
sg.)
prati
(pres.ind.act.
VII. 1 2. 1.
sg.)
-9U9rava
2; 8.2; 9.1
7.
14.2.
hearings
report^
noise,' revelation.
nom.sg.
III. 13.
preeminence^
-yam
V.2.6.
(acc.sg.)
-ta (nom.sg.)
VII.8.1;
910 tr a n. ear j
sense.
-ram
organ of
nom. -acc.sg. )
n.7.1;
III. 13. 2
I.I.
(2t.),i4
I.
iS.2,6.
V.i.4,10
7.1
20.2.
-rena (instr.sg.)
V.i.S,
9,11.
-re (loc.sg.)
rani
^laksna
\'.2o.2.
nom.pl.
a.
smooth^
sofl-,
i^^-
der.
8.
^reyans
n.
^raisthya
VIII.12.4.
IV.5.1; 6.2;
sg-)
V.2.
4-
IV.3.3;8.3.
prati^rnoti
tis
2.7.
dat.sg.
2-5; 7-3(2t.).
projuise.
Qruti
9.1.
upa^rnoti
f.
-thaya
^rotr m. hearer.
|-
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
V.I.I
precedeitcc.
a9ravayati
V.i.i
(2t.),7(2t.),I2; 2.6.
-tham
VII.1.3.
VI.1.3.
9U9rusante
IV.9.3.
-thas (nom.sg.)
a.
better^
compar.
more
fairei-^
cxcelle?it.
-nam
(nom.sg.n.)
22.l(2t.).
IT.
154
v/^lis
v/sthiv
-nim
pres.ind.mid.
IV.14.3.
sg.)
day.
I.
IV.14.3.
m.
V.io.
to-morroiv, next
IV.6.1
8.
7.1
atlv.
^vas
acc.sg.
7-
n. beast
of prey.
-dani (nom.-acc.pl.) VII.
-kas (nom.sg.)
11.2 1.3.
III. I I.I.
2.1
7.1
8.1
lo.i.
V.2.9; 10.8
^veta a. zvhite, hoary.
VII.26.2. VIII.
-tas (nom.sg.)
1. 12.2.
24.4.
-tam
6.6.
VIII.
(acc.sg.n.)
5 van
m. dog.
14. 1.
-va (nom.sg.) 1. 12. 2.
^vetaketU m.nm.pr.
-vanas (nom.pl.) 1. 12.2.
-tus
(nom.sg.)
-turn
-ram (nom.sg.)
Qvayoni
a doer.
twetzty-
sixth.^
sadvidha
a.
III.
12.5.
15.5.
IV.
V. 10.1,3.
'\
-fanam
3,6.
H-3;
1.3;
15-
-9am
(acc.sg.n.,
sodagakala
10.3;
13-3;
479)
12.3;
acterized by sixteen.
sixfold.
2.1,2
8.7; 9.4;
VI. 1. 1, 3;
3; 16.3.
num. a.
[sadviiiga
11. 9. 7.
VI.8.1.
(acc.sg.)
-to (voc.sg.)
birth-station of
f.
V.3.1.
VI.i.i.
(gcn.pl.)
VI. 7.
Wh.Gr.
II.i6.7(2t.).
a.
of sixteen
parts.
-las (nom.sg.)
VI. 7.1.
ni spit out.
fnisthivet
( pres.opt.act.
sg.)
II. 12. 2.
sa
samkalpaniya
sa-
see
pron.st.3pcrs.,
ta-.
luith,
to
(nu-
merous examples).
3 sa- insep. prefix 07ie^ the
evermore
a.
of uninter-
rupted delight.
mas
IV. 15.
(nolii.sg.)
2.
samvatsara m. year.
ras (nom.sg. ) 11. 19.2.
V.6.I.
-ram
19.
(abl.sg.)
1.3.
2.5.
m.
zuorld of
friends.
-kena
VIII.
(instr.sg.)
2.5.
sakhilokakama a. desirous
of the world offriends.
-mas (nom.sg.) VIII.
intention.
III.
(gen.sg.)
-pas
samvarga a. cltitc hi n g
grasping.
-gas (nom.sg.)
IV. 3.1,
-pam
(acc.sg.)
(nom.du.m.)
IV.
to?tch,
con-
tact.
-gena (instr.sg.)
III. 13.
5.1.
VIII. 2. 1,
2,3'4^5A7'8,95io-
(gen.sg.)
VII.
4-3-
8.
VI 1. 4.3
-pat (abl.sg.)
pasya
34-
V"II.4.2,
3(2t.).
(2t.)
3-
samsparga m.
VII.4.
(nom.sg.)
1,2; 26.1.
1,
gau
V.10.2.
-rasya
all^
III.
2.5.
(acc.sg.)
V.I. 8,9,10,1
-rat
for
VIII.4.2.
samyadvama
{^seme l^
once
olim^ /
hy^ fiirnisJicd
similar
once
once;
panied
'55
time., at
-yam
(acc.sg.n.)
1. 2.6.
samkalpatmaka
56
samkalpatmaka
a.
with de-
satya
sign as nature.
-kani
VII. sattrayana
nom.pl. n.)
4.2.
saiiikalpaikayana a. -tvith
f.
-dhis
Tv7/, ivish.
-tya (instr.sg.)
VII.^.
f.
fnrity of
samgavavela
-
f.
five
(secdivi-
-layam
f-pra
hang
on.,
meet
with., join.
prasaiiksis
(unaug.aor.
ind.act.sg.)
a.
IV. 1.2.
wandering
to-
gether^ m. passage.
-ras (nom.sg.)
sat- I St syl. of
I-iS-S-
sattiya.
VIII.3.5.
VII. 26.
-thas (nom.pl.f.)
best.
VI.8.
4,6.
satya
a.
truej
real.,
real or
tr?te.,
tne
n.
reality^
-yam(nom.-acc.sg.n.,acc.
sg.m.)
VI. 1. 4,
"-3; 12.3;
H-3; 15-3; 16.
IO-3;
13-3;
1.2.3.
4-152,3,4; ^-7; 9-
5^6;
4;
VII.2.i(2t.)
2,3.
mas (nom.pl.)
(loc.sg.)
time for
gatJiering
ond of the
VII.
(nom.sg.)
26.2.
-dhau
2(7t.).
sattama
VIII.
nature.
saihklpti
saihcara
years),
-nam (nom.sg.)
VII. sattvaguddhi
4.2.
sacrijicial
5.2.
-nani (noni.pl.n.)
C01V
n.
7.
i6.i(2t.); 17.1(31.).
VIII.1.5.
n.9.5.
-yena
1
1.2.
(instr.sg.)
III.
VT.16.2.
VII.
l6.l(2t.).
saty akama
-yat (abl.sg.)
VIII. 3.
VIII. i.
(acc.pl.)
157
IV.4.5.
-} as (nom.pl,)
-}an
sant
Vil.l.l.
13.1,2.
-sidan (pres.ppl.act.nom.
VII.8.1.
sg.)
-sasada (perf.ind.act.sg.)
6(2t.).
VIII.
-yanani (gen.pl.)
VI. 7. 2,4.
1.11.4,6,8.
VII. 1. 1.
tridh
a.
satyakama
lov-
IV.4.1,
V.2, 0-
2(2t.),4(2t.).
VIII.I.5;
-me
-ma
7.2
8.2
9.
V.
-nam
( nom.sg. )
(acc.sg.)
satyavacana
n.
nisannam (pass-jopLnom.
VIII. 2.4.
sg.n.)
samprasannas (pass.ppl.
VIII. 6. 3
nom.sg.)
;
1 .
-nas (nom.pl.f.)
speaking.
(nom.sg.) III. 17.4.
satyasamkalpa a. xvith tJurcal or trtie as design^
qfjirm resohition.
-pas (nom.sg.)
i.
III. 14.2.
a.
e.)
(^fabri-
employ-
hupa
proach.
VI. 8.
4,6.
sanatkumara m.nm.pr.
ras (nom.sg.) VII. 26.2.
-ram
sant
a.
(acc.sg.)
being ;
VII. i.i.
real, holiest,
right ;
7.1,3.
satyabhisamdha
cating
I.I.
-nam
VIII.1.5;
o-racious.
1.
satyayajna m.nm.pr.
-iias
situated or
directed.
7.1,3.
IV. 10. 1,
(loc.sg.)
IV. 5.1
(voc.sg.)
6.2
self, lie, be
ing ; m.nm.pr.
-mas (nom.sg.)
\-
ity,
sat (nom.-acc.sg.n.)
19.1.
2(2t.);
VI.2.i(2t.)
8.4,6;
III.
;
2.
13.2.
VIII.4.2(3t.).
sit
near^
ap-
samdeha
I5S
samarata
sata (instr.sg.)
tas
VIII.5.2
lo.2(3t.).
sam
12. 1,
-ti
(loc.sg.) VL9.2(2t.).
Santas (nom.pl.) IV. 3. S.
(=human body)
evenness, balance.
tiii-
(2t.);
II.9.1
(2t.).
-mam
certainty^ doubt.
has (nom.sg.)
V.1.4.
together.
V.15.2
IV. I.
IO.I,2,3(2t.),4.
18.2.
II.
nom.sg. n.)
2.
er, fulfllcr.
I.i.S.
-ta (nom.sg.)
-dhis (nom.sg.)
I-S-Ssanmula a. xvith the real as samarpita, see \/r.
root or cause.
samavahara m. abundance.
[saptadaga num.a.
nas
teenth.'\
ad^^
saptadha
seven
in
VII.
ways, sevenfold.
[saptama num.a.
saptavidha
-dham
a.
seventh.'\
sevenfold.
U.S.
(acc.sg.n.)
1,3; 9-^'S;
10.1,6.
court of a prince.
14.
1.
VI.9.1.
similar.
1.
nom.sg. m.)
samana
(acc.sg.)
VIII.
3. 2.
m. breath (one
apana or udana
26.2.
bham
-ram (acc.sg.)
samana a. same,
fanci-
three;
M. M.
breathing.
Bo.
on]\Tit-
haucJi).
-nas (nom.sg.)
4.
III. 13.
V.22.1.
samasa
saras
tinion^
er^
VI. 4. 7.
(nom.sg.)
-sam
(acc.sg.
BR.
zk-
but
zamenschiebend^
VII. 1 5.3.
pass.subst.)
samiti
f.
cess.,
coincidi7ig
meeting ^assembly.
-tim (acc.sg.)
V. 1.4,14
(2t.).
-adam
V.1.4.
(acc.sg.)
encotinter ;
resi-
due.
-tam
V.3.1.
suc-
'welfare.
-at (nom.sg.)
condensatio7i.
sas
f.
59
V.2.4,5
(acc.sg.)
Ill
10.3
1 1
.2.
9.5.
VIIL
(nom.du.m.)
samprasada m. perfect
7.2.
nayas
11.1,2.
V.
nom.pl. )
1 1
cal/n.,
soul in sleep),
samidh a.Jlaming ;
-it
I
6.1
-idham
samudra m.
7.1
sea.,
17. 1.
5.
IV. 4.
8.1.
ocean.
(nom.sg.)
6.3.
fuel.
8.1.
(acc.sg.)
5; 6.1
-ras
7.1
i.
V.4.1
(nom.sg.)
III. 19.2.
II. 4.1
IV.
VI.io.i.
-das (nom.sg.)
VIII.
34; 12.3.
sayugvan a. zmited with;
having a double team
(BR.); united with
the itch! (Bo.) ; with
the car (M.M.).
-va
(nom.sg.)
IV. 1.3,
5,8.
-ram
-vanam (acc.sg.)
(acc.sg.) VI.io.i.
-rat (abl.sg.)
VI.io.i.
i-3,5samrddhi f. thriving., suc- sarana n. runnitig.
cess.
-dhis (nom.sg.)
-dhim
(acc.sg.)
I.i.S.
V.2.9.
IV.
sarpa -sarva
i6o
-(nom.sg.) VIIL5.3.
sarpa m. serpent.
-va
II.21.1.
-pas (nom.pl.)
sarpadevajanavidya
sci-
f.
2.1
n.
sarpis
clarified butter^
IV. 15.
-(nom. -acc.sg.)
VI.6.1.
12.2;
2
13.2;
16.2
19.2
23.4(
2t.
3.S(2t.)
).
10.3;
13-3;
15.
18.2
15.
IV.i.4,6;
1.2
12.2
VI. I.
II. 3.
74;
9.4;
S.7;
11.2,3;
14-3;
V.2.
i6.i(2t.).
VII.2.1
3.
14.2;
14.1,2,4;
6(2t.),7;
4'5'6;
1.2;
2i.2,4(2t.)
III. I 2.
4; 16.1,3,5.
17.2
20.2
(2t.),2;
13.2
II.
1.3.6.
12,
'
15-3;
16.
4.2;
15.
25.i(2t.),2
26.1,2.
23.2.
V.24.3.
I2.6(2t.).
-vani
I.
n.9.2;
11.5,7,9.
III. i9.3(
2t.).
IV.I5.2(2t.),3(2t.).
1.
II. 22.
23.4.
1.6.6.
VI.11.2.
sg.m.)
IL21.
3(3t-)'5(3t-);
9.1
II.9.1.
2;
ghee.
1.
-vena (instr.sg.)
-vasmin (loc.sg.)
111.19.3(21.).
7.1.
III. 1 2.
II. 33.4.
pl.n.)
(nom.sg.)
-yam
6.
Vn.1.4.
(acc.sg.) VII. 1.2
V.
VII.I5.4.
15; 24.5.
VIII. 1.4.
-vas (nom. pi. f.) II. 21. 4.
VI.8.4,6
10.2.
9.2;
VIII.3.2.
-van (acc.pl.)
IV. 3. 2, 3
1.2.
IL22.1.
VI.
17.10.
VIII.
VII.10.2.
7.l(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.);
I2.6(2t.).
-vais (instr.pl.)
1.
10.6;
11.2,3.
-vebhyas
(abl.pl.)
1.6.
7(2t.).
-vesu
(loc.pl.)
4(2t.).
IV. 1 5.
V.3.7;
(3t.); 24.2(3t.).
iS.i
VII.
fearvakarman
25. 2( 2t.
VIII. 1.6
).
-vasu
a.
all kinds
-ma
III. 14.
(nom.sg.)
sarva9as adv.
VII.
%v holly.
26.2.
IV.3.S.
sarvakarman
i6i
2,4.
11.4.1,
(loc.pl. f.)
2.
-sas
54; 74-
(2t.); 4-3;
sa^arira
containing sarvendriya
of
n.
onc\s
all
sense or pozver.
ivork.
111.
(nom.sg.m.)
-yani (acc.pl.)
VIII. 15.
I.
14.2,4.
sarvakama
-mas (nom.sg.)
III. 14.
2,4.
sarvagandha
a.
tard-seed.
containing
all perfiu)ics.
-dhas (nom.sg.)
111. 14.
same world.
2,4.
m.
sarvagranthi
kiwt
tangle of eve7y
-thmam
savana
sort.
(gen.pl.)
-tarn (acc.sg.)
ox-
\\\.
II. 20.3.
pressing
(the juice of
III.13.7.
sarvadhatama
a.supl.
II.
acc.sg.n.
7-
sarvabhuta
n.
V.2.
a.
i.
containing all
24.1,10. III.l6,2,3(2t.),
-ta (nom.sg.)
-tur (gen.sg.)
II. 24. 7.
1.
11
12.5.
V.2.7.
with the body.
12.
VIII.
1.
-rasya (gen.sg
12.1.
saps orjl/iids.
II.
4-
sagarira a.
-ras (nom.sg.)
every being.
sarvarasa
-nasya (gen.sg.)
most savitr m.nm.pr.
out
Soma),
Soma-libation
26.2.
-mam
n.
VIII.
63
sas
na.
saman
sadhya caus.grdv. to he
subdued or ivon ; m.
see sahamacert, deities, the
pi.
tvith.
Sadhyas.
1.
-yas
sadhvalamkrta
-tas (nom.sg.)
III. 15.
(nom.sg.f. )
-ram
VIII.9.
1,2.
-te (loc.sg.)
2.
sahasra
VIII.9.1,2.
VIII.8.
-tau (nom.du.)
n. tJiousaiid.
(nom.-acc.sg.)
-well
a.
adorned.
ivorld-soiiPs case.
na
III.
(gen.pl.)
10.3,4.
(pres.ppl.mid.)
a.
ovcrpo-ivcriiig ; i
southei'u side of the
III.io.i.
(noni.pl.)
yanam
VII.ii.i.
IV.2.3.
sahamana
II. 13.
IV.
2(2t.),3(3t.).
sa-
1st syl. of
6.1,2,3,4,6;
sadistha a.supl.
tham
(a
saman.
I.
best.
IV.9.
(acc.sg.n.)
a.
sti-aight^ ^ig^^i-,
n.acc. as adv.
ivcll.
(2t.),3(2t.),4.
IV. 1.4,
VII.2.i(2t.)
-dhuna
(insti'.sg.)
7.1.
II.
i.
2.
ar-
yajus)
- Veda.
Sama
-ma (nom.-acc.sg.)
the
pi.
I.i.
4.4;
6.i(4t.),2(4t.),3
(4t.),4(4t.),5(3t.),6,S;
(4t.),5,7,9(2t.);
(
2t.
1-1,3:4;
2.1,3;
8.5
II.
),6,7(2t.),8.
3.1,2;
7.
-dhavas
4.
stanza
7.i(4t.),2(4t.),3(4t.),4
II.i.i
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
6.
sacred song
2,4.5(2t-); 3-4(3t-)'S;
good;
n.
Vedic
cf. rc,
7.1,2,3,4.
3-
sadhu
saman
(nom.]-)l.)
III. 19.4.
II. i.
io.i,6( 2t.
24.3,7,11.
21.1,2
saman \^i su
-mna
I-S-S.
(instr.sg.)
sardha
1.2
I.
(abl.-geii.sg.)
4.3
II.
8,4.
1.
22.1.
9-2,34^5 A7'^
-mni (loc.sg.) l4-3-mani (nom.-acc.pl.) III.
-dham
3.1,2.
IV. 17. 2.
VI.
(abl.pl.)
IV.
7.2.
-mabhyas
sarstita
VIII.
being of equal
f.
rank,
-tam (acc.sg.)
simha m. lion.
II. 20.2.
-has (nom.sg.)
VI.9.3
10.2.
I7-3-
-mnam
I-
(gen.pl.)
13.4.
saman
n.
v'sic
pour
sincati
IV.i7.6(3t.).
out, sprinkle.
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
V.I 0.6.
possession,
-anti
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
IV.15.1.
i-i3)'
(acc.sg.n.)
9.2.
xvith a halfj n.
a.
ace. as
II.I.2.
-mnas
l6:
saman
n.
II. 1. 2).
chants,
-das
abhisidhyati
Veda of
Sama Veda.
m.
samaveda
(nom.sg.)
-dam
-sam
III. 3. 2
(acc.sg.)
15.7.
I'3-7-
VII.1.4.
III.3.1.
VIL1.2;
2.1
n.
universal
rtele.
(dat.sg.
as
inf.)
n.
community,
in-
timate union.
-yam
2.
(acc.sg.)
II. 2
5.3
12.2.
IV. 17.7.
IV.
(instr.sg.)
(acc.sg.)
17.7.
v''i
Bo.)?
II.24.13.
sayugya
-sena
7.1.
yaya
9.2
sisa n. lead.
7.2
(pres.ind.
VII.4.3
act.sg.)
sosyati
(fut.ind.act.sg.,
Bo.)?
II. 20.
sutam (pass.ppl.nom.sg.
n.)
V.12.1.
su suhaya
>/i
l6!
press out
f-a
a de-
to
gree or sufficiently.
asutam
nom.
fragrant j n. perfu7ne.
-bhi
1.2.2,9.
(acc.sg.n.)
sg.n.)
out for the sura f. spirituous liquor.,
|-p*"3- pfcss
brandy.
future or lastingly.
(pass.ppl.
V.13.1.
sg.n.)
ram
V.10.9.
(acc.sg.)
a.
surupa
well formed^
beaut ifil.
-pan
II.
(acc.pl.)
15.2.
en ; n. gold.
sosyati (fut.ind.act.sg., of
n.
-tarn
-nas (nom.sg.m.)
III. 17.5.
man?)
sukrta
good
deed^ merit.
VIII.
(nom.sg.)
a.
pleasant^ comfort-
-kham
(nom.-acc.sg.n.)
VII.22.i(
4t. )
subhiksa
IV.
a. ivell
clothed.
VIII.
(nom.sg.)
9.1,2.
-tis
ivell
provided
(nom.sg.)
VII. 10.
I(2t.).
susi m. opefziitg of a
ivithfood.
-sa (nom.sg.f.)
1.
-nas
18.:
a.
f.
R'.i7.7.
V.12. suvrsti
nom.-acc.sg.n.
17.7.
23.1
(3t.)-
1.6.6.
(instr.sg.)
suvasana
111.19.1,2.
-nena
4.1.
sukha
-nam
10.5.
tvell;
tube.,
hole.
-sis (nom.sg.)
III. 13. i,
north-
welfare;
ern side of the world- suhaya m. spirited
souVs case.
steed., charger.
horse.,
sukarayoni v/sev
yas (nom.sg.) V.1.12.
sukarayoni f. birth-station
Sutra
dis-
pass.ppl.
I.i 1.3.
visrjet
(pres.opt.act.sg.)
VI. 14. 1.
-rstas (pass.ppl.nom.sg.)
-yas (nom.sj^.)
IV^-S-i
7-3-
(acc.sg-.)
suryacandramas
12. 1.
VI. 14. 1.
(-sam
ttnite., ?>zix.
III. 17. 7.
saiiisrjyate
un
pass.sg.)
m.
and moon.
-masau (nom.du.) VII.
(pres.ind.
1. 1.6.
VIII. 1. 3.
1.12.4.
srptas (pass.ppl.nom.sg.)
'
VIII. 6.3.
ten.
upasrtya grd.
I.3.12.
has[-abhinis flotv or
t en
go.,
sun.
let
nom.pl.)
-yam
|-samati
miss.
V.io.y.
(acc.sg.)
thready cord.
n.
samatisrstas
of a hog.
-nlm
165
forth
-tas
asasrpus (perf.ind.act.pl.)
1.
to.
(pass.ppl.nom.pl.)
VIII.6.2(2t.).
f-a creep near.
12.4.
creep back.
V.2.6.
grd.
pratisrpya
nom.sg.f.)
\/sr j se?id fo rth., htirl., setu s.. fettering ; m. band.,
abhinihsrta
(pass.pj:)!.
|-prati
VIII. 6.6.
srjate
'
-tus (nom.sg.)
der,
(pres.ind.mid.sg.)
VII.II.l(2t.).
asrjata (impf.ind.mid.sg.)
VI.2.3(2t.).
anta (impf.ind.mid.pl.)
VI.2.4.
VIII.4.
I.
-tum
(acc.sg.)
VIII. 4.
I,2(2t.).
v/sev stay
by.,
serve.,
wor-
ship.
66
soma
v/stu
-mas (nom.sg.)
V.4.2
stanayati (pres.ind.act.sg.
10.4.
cans.)
-mam
(acc.sg.)
mena
(instr.sg.)
III. 9.
-masya (gen^sg. )
II. 22.
II-3.1
stanayitnu m. tJumder.
-nus ( nom.sg. ) VIII.
12.2.
stabdha
I.
somasavana
Soma
a.
whercfrom
I5'i-
VII.ii.i.
V.5.2.
pass.ppl.
propped/
stiffs
a.
rigid/
pressed^ m.
pitffed up.
-dhas (nom.sg.)JVI.i.2,3.
nm.pr. of a tree (Bo.).
-nas (nom.sg.) VIII. 5. 3. v/stu praise.
stuvita (pres.opt.mid.sg.,
somya a. relating to So-
ma/
is
moonlike^ ge?itle/
voc.sg.
Tfiy
-( voc.sg.m.
Wh.Gr.i29.a)
dear !
I
V.4.4,5
2;
8.3(2t.);
VI.
i4.i,2(2t.),3.
2.1,
i-ir34'5'6(:2t.),7:
2(2t.);
3.4;
9.
4.7;
5.4
(2t.); 6.i,2,3,4,5(2t.);
7-i>2,3(2t.),5,6(2t.); 8.
J(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.),4
(4t.)'5'6(5t-)'7; 9-152,
4;
10.1,2,3;
11.1,2,3;
I2.2(2t.),3(2t.);
3;
^3-
i4-i'3;
i5-^'3
13.2,
5
16.
I. II.
Gr.617)
7.3(2t.);
1.3.12
II. 22. 2.
(3t.).
3.
stosyan (fut.ppl.act.nom.
sg.)
1.3.8,10.
-yamanas
fut.ppl.mid.
1.12.4.
-nan
(fvit.ppl.mid.acc.pl.)
I.io.S.
[-abhi
give praise
to^
praise.
abhistosyan
nom.sg.)
fut.ppl.act.
1.3.9,11.
stutagastra
(-pra titter
f raise.
prastosyasi
sg.)
praise^
v/stha
167
(fut.ind.act.
1.10.9;
1I-4-
-kena
VIII.
(instr.sg.)
2.9.
desirous
a.
prastosyas (cond.ind.act. strilokakama
I.I 1.5.
of the world of ivonicn.
sg.)
stutagastra
n.
chant and
Ud2.9.
Ho- sthandila
-nas (nom.sg.)
V.io.cj;
VI. 16.
(acc.sg.)
V.2.8.
sthavistha a.supl.
thickest.,
chanting a
trill (in
Sam an;
hum).
-mam
(acc.sg.)
mena
(instr.sg.)
1.
3. 10.
1.
3. 10.
(nom.sg.) II.
-riyam (acc.sg.)
stand.,
3. 1,
A". 2. 8,
riya (instr.sg.)
-riyas (nom.pl.)
II. 13.1.
VIII.
cease.
3.
VII.8.i(2t.).
-anti
(pres.ind.act.pl.)
VIII.6.1.
(
nm.ag. nom.sg.
III.ii.i.
sthitam (pass.ppl.nom.sg.
1.3.6.
VIII. 15.1.
stand
|-adhi
tipon., as-
-tva grd.
2.9.
-ribhis (instr.pl.)
con-
tisthati (pres.ind.act.sg.)
VI. 1 i.i ; 12.2.
V.I.
n.)
9-
exist ;
sthata
ivotnan.
VI.5.1,
2,3-
v/stha
Stobha m, shout
f.
sacri-
spot^ place.
-thas (nom.sg.)
n. theft.
I.
stri
fice)
grossest.
11.5.
e.g.,
leveled piece
-le (loc.sg.)
stena m. thief.
-yam
n.
of ground (for
steya
VI 11.
mas (nom.sg.)
VIII.
acquire.
adhitisthatas
(prcs.ind.
68
v/stha
21.
thanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
-thanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
V.20.2.
-than (pres.ppl.act.nom.
act.du.)
2 ; 22.2
\'.I9.2
;
VI.9.1.
23.2.
sprout^ gro'iV.
uttisthati
(pres.ind.act.
II.24.6,
1.3.6.
sg.)
VII.30.I.
sg.)
to
(pasture),
abhiprasthapayan (pres.
ppl. act. cans.
10,15.
than (pres.ppl.act.nom.
sg.,Wh.Gr. 671) VII.
-yam
(caus.vbl.f.acc.sg.)
IV. 6.1
8.1.
aniittisthanti
act.pl.)
anudatisthan
act.pl.)
(prcs.ind.
III. 19.3.
(impf.ind.
III. 19. 3.
samuttisthati
(pres.ind.
VIII. 2. 10.
nom. sg. )
IV.4.5.
7.1
8.1.
standfrm, rest
|-prati
per.
pratitisthati (pres.ind.act.
IV.i6.5(2t.).
sg.)
-than tarn
acc.sg.)
IV. 1 6.5.
(pass. ppl.
pratisthitas
-thatas (pres.ind.act.du.)
VIII.2.6,7,8.
-thanti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
-tas
act.sg.)
VIII.2. 1,2,3,4,5,9.
samutthaya grd.
34;
f-nis
VIII.
12.2,3.
groivforth ; com-
plete, prepare.
nisttsthati
sg.)
(St.).
(pres.ind.act.
21. 1
;
VII. 20.1
III. 12. 2.
n.)
(pass.ppl.nom.pl.)
111.12.3,4.
tani
(pass.ppl.nom.pl.
VII.4.2;
n.)
-tan
VII.4.3;
5.2.
sthanu
smrtilambha
auupratitisthati (prcs.iiul.
act.sg.)
IV. 16.5.
/
(-samprati
zvard^ app/y
21
ti
to-
to j caus.
sampratisthapya caus.
VIII. 15.1.
abhisam
fjobi oneself
caus.
to^ stand stillj
to
an
end
at.
bringgrd.
abhisariisthapay amas
(
pres.ind.act.pl.caus.
post.
Sthana
V.io.S.
feeling /
m.pl.
mute consonants.
-fas (nom.pl.)
-fcsu (loc.pl.)
sprgati
11.22.3,5.
II. 22. 4.
ind. act.sg.)
( pros.
remembrance.,
26.1.
encl.pcl.
severative
VII. 13.
(acc.sg.)
VII.
-rena (instr.sg.)
I3.l(2t.).
VII. 13.2
14.1.
(2t.);
-rasya
VII.
(gen.sg.)
as.
(slightly as;
esp.
^vith
long for ;
hand
down.,
teach.
smareyiis
(pres.opt.act.
VII.13.1.
pi.)
(pres.ppl.act.nom.
sg.)
VIII.12.3.
VI e
m o ry
good
memory / tradition.
-tis
VIII.12.1.
sma
14.
smrti
incur.
VIII.6.3.
tas
-ram
-ran
16.7.
longing., love.
VII. 13.
-ras (nom.sg.)
mention.,
touchitig / m. con-
tact.,
m.
nam (nom.sg.)
a.
io.i(2t.).
VI. 4. 5.
13.2.
station/ rank.
spar^a
V.3.3.
(clat.sg.)
n.
IV.
-rat (abl.sg.)
1.8.5,7.
-nave
smara
conjine^ concentrate.
169
(nom.sg.) VII.26.2.
-bhe
(loc.sg.)
V 11.26.2.
\/syad
lyo
syand move
v/syad,
v/svar
xvoman j
o/i^
svam
Jiastcit^ jioxu.
syandantc (pres.ind.mid.
Vi
srakti
svena
as.
-tayas
9.1,3;
svadha
VIII.
10.2,4.
(nom.sg^.n.)
VIII. y. 2
(instr.sg.)
VIII.
VIII.6.3
svapna m.
-nam
drifi^
drop juice.
-ne
(pres.opt.act.sg.)
11.23.3,4.
o%vn
persons)
self
sons)
(
;
all
(all
(3)
three
-tarn (acc.sg.)
one-
VI.8.1.
per-
m.f. kinsman^
dream-
sleeping or dreaming.
otvii^
refl.
three
n.
II-23-3(i) poss.
V.2.9.
vision.
(impf.ind.act.pl.)
one's
A^III.6.
VIII.io.i.
(loc.pl.)
dreams/
samprasravat (impf.ind.
a.
drca?n.
(acc.sg.)
Sva pron.
ii.i.
(loc.sg.)
nesu
act.sg.)
sleep.,
3; II.I.
VI.ii.i(3t.).
-van
VI.8.i(2t.).
suptas (pass.ppl.nom.sg.)
10.2,4.
sravet
IV.3.3.
lameness.
n.
refreshing
svapiti (pres.ind.act.sg.)
10,2.
yena
f. sxveet.,
-dham
VIII.
x/svap
(loc.sg.)
sramya
V.i.
10.1,3.
-me
(gen.pl.)
2,5-
srama a. lame.
-mas (nom.sg.)
mam
VII. 24.1.
sve (loc.sg.)
15.1.
VIII.
12.2(2t.),3.
svanam
III.
(nom.pl.)
VI. 8.
(instr.sg.)
3.4;
cdgc^ comer.
f.
properly.
I(2t.).
VI.io.i.
II.4.1.
pi.)
syam, see
n.
(acc.sg.m.)
'
Wh.RVF.).
svar
svarajya
svaran (prcs.ppl.act.nom.
171
-gasya
III.
(gen.sg.)
i3-6(3t.)-
let
)-ati
away.
atisvarati
sg.)
svar
(pres.ind.act.
sunlig ht
heaven;
syll.
indcl. sacred
(dissyl.),
II. 23. 3.
sky
111.15.3,7;
IV. 17.
I7.7(acc.sg.).
3.6.
4; 8.4;
1.
3. 2
4.
12.2.
(acc.sg.
a.
self-ruling.,
in-
dependent.
VII.
-rat (nom.sg.m.)
25.2.
self-mle, in-
depejzdejzt dominion.
-yaya
(dat.sg.
as
inf.)
II. 24.12.
a.
leading
(acc.sg.m.)
(2t.).
6.
VII.
(acc.sg.)
15.2.
VIII.
-saras (nom.pl.)
kena
VIII.
(instr.sg.)
svasrlokakama
a.
desirous
-mas (nom.sg.)
VIII.
2.4.
-ha (nom.sg.)
VII. 15.
SVadhyaya m. reading or
repeating
to
oneself
(esp. of the
stzidy
Veda),
to light.,
heavenly ; m. heaven.
-gam
VII. 15. i.
2,3n.
svarajya
svarga
SJlram
2.4.
1.4.3,5,
sister.
f.
-sa (nom.sg.)
ters.
(nom.sg.)
-ram
as.
2.4.
vowels.
pi.
-v/i
svara m. sounds
ras
svasr
1.8. 5.
(nom.sg.n.)
svas, see
1.4.4.
n. stilly
-vam
11.22. 2.
VIII.3.3,5.
1.8. 5
III.13.
-yam
(acc.sg. as inf.)
svarajya
ty^
ion.
I.
VIII. 15. 1.
12. 1.
n.
self sovereign-
U7ili7nited
dotnin-
svaha
17-
yam
1
acc.sg.
II 1. 6.
^o.
^-4; 9-4'
7-4;
ha
v/svid siveat.
svedate (pres.ind.mid.sg.)
VI.2.3.
4-
SVaha
oblations; hail to
(dat.),=Ame /
of invocation).
(at
end
II. 24.
IV. 1 7.4,5,6.
6,10,15.
ha
1.1.7,8;
2.l(2t.),2(2t.),3
(2t.),4(2t.),5(2t.),6
(2t.),7(2t.),8,10,II,I2,
i3(3t.).H;
2,4.5;
<^-7;
3-1. 12;
7-S;
5.
S.I
(2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.),4(4t.),
5(2t.),6,7(3t-)'8(2t.);
9.l( 2t.),2(2t.),3(2t.),
4;
IO.I,2(3t.),3(2t.),
4,5,6,8,11;
II.l(2t.),
2,34,5(2t.)A7(2t.),S,
9(2t.);
i2.i,3(2t. ),4
(2t.).
4.
svid
emph. end.
slightly
pel.
really^
then.
1.
^erhaps^
10.4.
svairin a.J'ree^
zvatzto/?,
un-
chaste.
-rl
(nom.sg.m.)
V.11.5.
-rini (nom.sg.f.)
V.11.5.
hansa
hastihiranya
173
11-1,2
ghnanti (prcs.ind.act.pl.,
(3t.),3,4(2t.),5(2t.),6
(2t.),io(2t.);
(3t.).7(3t-);
2;
^2.1,2;
i4-i(2t.),
i3.i(2t.),2;
16.1
i5.i(2t.),2;
(2t.),2; i7.i(2t.),2;
1.2;
sg.)
18.
24.3,4(21.).
VI.i.i(2t.),2,3,7; 2.1,2;
54;
4-5;
6.5; 7-2(3t-)'
3,4(5t.),6; 8. 1, 7; 9.4;
10.3;
11.3,3;
12.2,3;
14.
i3-i(3t.)'2(2t.),3;
3; 15-3; i6.3(2t.).
VII.i.i(2t.).2,3;
2; 7.2; S.I
2;
15.1;
4.2;
9.1
24.2;
5.
14.
26.1,
VIII.3.4(2t.),5; 5.3;
7.
i.2(3t-)'3(4t-):4(2t.);
8.i(3t.),2(3t.),3(3t.),
4(3t-); 9-i'2(2t.),3
(3t.);
io.i(3t.),3(2t.),
4(3t.); ii.i(3t.),2(2t.),
hansa m. goose j
stvan^
7.1,2.
sam
(acc.sg.)
IV. 1.2.
IV. 1.2.
sas (nom.pl.)
v/han smite^ hurt^ slay^ destroy.
2,4.
hanyate
1-5;
pres.ind.pass.
VI.16.1.
VIII.
\/i
ha hiranmaya
\/i
174
ha
Icavc^
forsake^ loscj
pass, vanish^ fail^per-
3;
ish.
10.6.
jahati
4;
(pres.ind.act.sg.)
IV. 6.3,4.
start tip, gofot'th.
ha
v/2
1
8.1,2
7.6;
3.i(3t.);
VIII
15.4; 24.2.
3.i,2(2t.);
1.5;
4.2
5.l(2t.),2(2t.),
3; 6.3; 8.5(2t.).
hiii
word
onomatop.
w.
(ace),
abhyujjihate
pres.ind.
I.I 1.5.
mid.sg.)
samjihanas(pres.ppl.mid.
nom.sg.)
V.I
1.5.
1.
W.
10.6.
(dissyl.).
I-
haridrumata m.nm.pr.
tam
IV.4.3.
(acc.sg.)
because;
1.
5-^53
7-9; ^-S'T;
2,34^5 A78.
14.
18.1
5.1
;
13.2. II.
9.2
12. i;
16.
19.1
10.
13. i;
1
17.
20.1
1.
a.
sound
sharing
hin.
jinas (nom.pl.)
II. 9. 2.
,8
hinkr, see \/kr.
3.6 hita, see ^/dha.
;
II-9-
111.5-4
15-1
IV.I.8;
S.i
II. i;
in the
^.S;
9-I-
12.2,3,4;
16.1,3,5.
7.1
i;
1.
hihkarabhajin
verily ; for,
2.2,3,4,5,6,9,11;
4-1
2.1,2; 3.1
21.
13.1-
sa-
next
see
three words.
?2a?n.
syl.
(dissyl.).
hi postp.pcl.
cow
cred
low
neigJi,
to calf) ;
-ras (noin.sg.)
1.5.
ras (nom.sg.)
coo,
hill,
(as
(2t.);
6.5;
(2t.);
tion
3.1,4:
VI.1.7; 4.5; 5
Vn.1.3;
hiyate (pres.ind.pass.sg.)
^'
i5-2,354-
1.15; 2.6(2t.);
VI.ii.2(4t.).
(3t-);
9-3;
3.2,
hiranmaya
a.
made
of
crold. o-olden.
vas
(nom.sg.)
yam
5-3-
(nom.sg.n.)
1.6^6.
VIII.
hiranya
n.
hiranya
-yasya
ij:-o/d.
V.io,
(gcii.sg.)
9-
hiranyake^a
g- olden
a.
\/hr
humkara m.
hum.
buzzing
hiranyanidhi
ui.
syl.,
in-
call to or hither.
f-a
ahvayati
A^III.
pres.ind.act.
VII. 12. 1.
sg.)
3.2.
hiranyagmagru
a.
g olden
bearded.
rijice.
pres.ind.act.sg.
11.24.5,9,14.
V.24.1,
pres.ind.act.pl.
hold^
carry^
bring ;
offer ; take.
haranti (pres.ind.act.pl.)
II. 21.4.
V.9.2.
|-apa take axvay ^ seize^
apfiharsit (aor.ind.act.sg.)
VI. 1 6. 1.
bring near^
f-a
-huyat (pres.opt.act.sg-.)
IV. 17.4,5,6. V.I 9. 1
accept^ procure.
ahara (imv.act.sg.)
21.1
5(2t.).
(2t.);
22.i(2t.);
23.1
12.
(2t.);
24.1.
(2t.)
(pres.ind.act.
II. 19.2.
rob.
2,3-
-hvati
stagger.
sg.)
make A^hr
|-vi
1.6.6.
juhoti
vihiiirchati
-rus (nom.sg.)
2o.i(2t.)
vite.
of gold.
an
1 1
24.8,12,13.
v/hu, hva call upon^
treasure
(acc.sg.)
ou n
sacred
see stobha.
IV. 3. 7.
-ras (nom.sg.)
.y
-ras (nom.sg.)
I.I3-3intcrj. of growling or
1.6.6.
(nom.sg.)
hiranyadanstra a. golden-
tJu
hum
haired.
^as
dhim
^75
V. 24.2,4.
-tva grd.
V.2.4,5(4t.).
IV.4.5.
<ff(^^i
1. 12.
VI.
13.1.
rat (unaug.impf.ind.act.
sg.)
1.
2.5.
ajahara (perf.ind.act.sg.)
1.
10.5.
hrd homiya
176
hrus
perf.ind.act.pl.
l^ratihrtas (pass.ppl.nom.
I. 2. I.
bring
n. iicart.
-di
udaharisyati (fut.ind.act.
VI.4.5.
utter ^ pro-
sg.)
f-abhivya
hrdaya
act.sg.)
n. heart.
-yam (nom.sg.)
V.18.2.
4.
abhivyaharati (pres.ind.
III. 12.
VIII. 3. 3.
1.3.3,4.
(pres.subj.act.sg.)
VIII. 3. 3
(loc.sg.)
(2t.).
nounce., recite.
-rani
II. 9.6.
pi.)
|-uda
VIII.6.i,6.
-ye
VIII. 12. 4.
III.
(loc.sg.)
2.9;
i4-3(2t.),4-
act.sg.)
(-pari
VII.2.i(2t.)
1.5.5(21.).
move
around., hetu
pariharani
act.sg.)
pres.subj.
m.
-tos (gen.sg.)
-tas
1
13.2.
7.1.
causey
oblique cases as adv.prep. 071 account.
hemanta m.
II. 22. 5.
imptilsc.,
1.3.5.
tvinter.
(nom.sg.)
II.5.1
6. 1,
back., take.,
pratiharamanani
pres.
ppl.mid.nom.i^l.n.)
1
I.
1.9.
pratiharisyasi
act.sg.)
I.I 0.1
fut.ind.
1
1. 8.
-ta (nom.sg.)
IV. 16. 2.
hotrsadana n. seat of the
Hotar.
-nat (abl.sg.)
I.5.5.
1.
11.9.
tfs>-^.
chief priest.
a.
sacrijicial.,
ap-
pointedfor offering.
hoyi
-yam (nom.sg.n.)
\/hva
'77
apahnuvita(pres.opt.mid.
V.19
VII.15.4.
sg.)
hoyi voc.pcl.
hallkara, after
v/hnu
|-ni
I V.I. 2.
-s/2
nihmite(pres.ind.mid.sg.)
ha.
IV. 14.2.
lildc.
hraduni
conceal
|-apa hide or
from^ deny.
deny.
f.
hall.,
hailstone.
-nayas (nom.pl.)
v/hva, see \/hu.
12
V.5.1.
APPENDIX A
Alterations
in
Bohtlingk's Tbxt
kapilasa.
-1 4. 1.
Bo. follows
all
tions in reading-
is,
however, not merely rare, but is otherwise unquotaunknown and the whole passage must be
ble or quite
critical solution of
any value,
(i)
to a copyist to
ly elsewhere,
seven times in
In
matical Index).
crucial point,
if
this
am
ChU.
not mistaken.
Gram-
alone (see
word, nevertheless,
(2)
An
lies
the
ancient
helped possibly
to -nas,
-nah(-nas), caused him to change aparahne
(179)
i8o
naturally as before.
whole,
-25.3ff.
1 1 1.
my argument
as a
cf. 11.9.3,4,5,8.
2.6.
vigva.
Read
-i6.2ff.
-17.7.
at
end of
Vedic quotation.
IV.4.4ff.
-ii.2ff.
Read somya
for
saumya.
-14.2.
-17.7.
V.15.2.
choice.
-4.4.
tejasa
see
comment on
V 23.2.
-1 4. 1.
ChU.
w.
only w. abl.
is
of course, to the
same thing
prepo-
i8i
<i>
phrase is adverbial ; but I question the correctness of writing so ckimsy a cpd. unless actually found
in an accented text.
sitional
-6,1.
VIII.6.I.
-7.3.
-9. iff.
(<?)
Alispriiits
VI. 12. 2.
I.I.I.
-1.8.
-3.4.
-4.2.
-5.4.
havo
cf.
te for ba-
te.
(Benares) of maranamevasya
tat.
clusion.
(3) Misprifits
Noted by Wh.AJP.
-7.2.
-12.4.
Read akaga
for ak-.
Text
Alterations in Bohtruic^k's
<b
82
(c)
III.7.4.
Misprints
to
Be Noted
Further.
Read dvistavaddaksinatas
for
-vadrk- (a
-13.5,
IV. 15.6.
for vacas.
-10.4.
punctuations at VII. 3. 1
14.2
and VIII.3.3.
APPENDIX B. VERB-LIST
Moods and Tenses
I.
(^a)
Pri Diary
Co)ijugatio)i
Classified by For>ii
and
Mcafiing.
as
kram
sic(2t.),
sidh(6t.),
has,
Total,
9i(3t.), 2 9i(2t.),
9ri(2t.),9r3(2t.),srj(2t.),syad(2t.),
svid, han(3t.), 2 ha, hnu.
Total, 60.
(18;]}
Verb-List
184
yV^A,
Pres.subj.mid.
Total, 29.
\/mail.
i,
dhvans, pad
vr(2t.),
vid(3t.), 2 vid(3t.),
Pres.imv.mid.
tal,
vr(4t.),
Total, 88.
To-
8.
Pres.-fut.imv.act.
\/2 ga.
Total, 129.
Verb-JList
iS^
Cf. also:
i,
avyathamana(4t.
^^'^vyaXh.
waver).
6.
Total,
Total, 42.
Total, 27.
v/v/a5(2t.),
(lot.), vas(8t.),
cf. also
\/i vid(4ot.)
avidvans(
see p. 1S9.
i2t.).
xA^gam,
(3t.), vac(i3t.),
2.
4.
N/\/gam
VV^r,
Verb- List
86
5.
v/v/car(2t.), jval,
vid,
Total, 59.
A/vac.
4.
2 su.
(3t.), 2 vr,
Total,
pad
3.),
6.
\/dha.
UNAUGMENTED IMPERFECT
ACTIVE.
v/rud(?),hr.
UNAUGMENTED AORIST
I.
.v/i
v/v/ag,
ga(2t.).
kram.
2.
ACTIVE.
A/s/rud, vac.
4.
\/v/dah, saj.
5.
Total, 8.
v^up(3t.
Wh.Gr.SSy.a).
5.
y/radh.
Total, 4.
FUTURE ACTIVE.
khya(3t.), 2 ga(2t.), jna, dah, da(2t.), pat
(St.), pis, prach, bhu(i2t.), vac(3t.), vas(2t.), vrs(3t.),
x/x/ag,
i,
Total, 47.
FUTURE MIDDLE.
-x/v/chid, ni, pad(2t.),
Fut.ppl.act.
v'v/ag,
Fut.ppl.mid.
muc, yaj,
ji,
stu(4t.).
-v/\/yaj, stu(3t.).
vid.
Total,
Total,
6.
7.
Total, 4.
CONDITIONAL ACTIVE.
v/\/is,
vac(2t.),
kram, gam(6t.),
I
Cond.mid.
-\/v/mla, 9r(
NOMINA
AGENTIS.
stha.
v/x/i(28t.), bhu, vac(5t.),
Cf. the many vbl. subst. in -tr.
Total, 35.
Verb- List
PASSIVE PARTICIPLE
(A.
AND
187
cit(i4t.), jan,
jna
dha
kip,
pr(4t.),
vah(i9t.),
va(23t.),
vid, 3 vid(2t.),
vr, vrt(3t.),
(i3t.),
smr,
Cf. also
^ru
stha
gri,
su(3t.), sr,
srj(2t.), srp(3t.),
Total, 314.
svap(2t.), hu(2t.), hr.
independent
amata(2t.), amrta(45t.
\/mad
exhil-
semi-independent for-
-v/dig
Total,
94.
INFINITIVE.
Acc.
(2t.).
^/^/jiv(4t.), vac(2t.)
cf.
anagitu,
svadhyaya
Total, 9.
Total, 9.
Verb- List
88
2
9I, sr, srp, stha(4t.), hu(5t.).
vi(i(6t.), vi9(St.), vrt,
Total, 137.
Cf. also:
((5)
(i)
Ind.
PASSIVE.
ga(9t.), dah(2t.),
Pass.imv,
dham.
Total, 4.
\/nir.
Pass.pres.ppl.
Total, 8.
\/bhid.
Pass.impf.ind,
Pass.cond. \/r.
:
(2)
Pres.ppl.mid.-pass.
Ind.mid.
Opt.act.
-v/v^jfia(8t.), ^ru.
vid.
9.
(4)
CAUSATIVE.
cha
N/v/ap(2t.), ir(4t.), klp(3t.), gam(3t.),
stan(3t.),
Total, 27.
stha(2t.).
Ind.mid.: VN/kam(2t.),
cit,
jna, bhal(2t.),
7.
Opt.act.
Total, 6.
v/gup.
A./kram.
Pres.ppl.act.
Total,
Total,
x/gam.
Opt.mid.
Ind.act.
\/pa.
DESIDERATIVE.
(3)
Ind.act.
INTENSIVE.
A/>/kamp,
jval, vrj.
Total,
3.
vid.
Verb- List
Imv.act.
Pres.-fut.imv.act.
Pres.ppl.act.
Impf .ind.act.
Cond.mid.
tr.
Total,
14.
-y/vrt.
Total,
4.
v/chad.
-v/jna.
vZ\/r(2t.), ksudh(?).
Total,
v/\/dr9(2t.), stha.
Pass.ppl.
Grd.
189
3.
(c) Derivatives.
Gerundive: adarQaniya, anvestavya(4t.), agravaniya, asamkalpaniya, guhya (2t. ; v/guh hide), darganiya, paricarya, prayogya, bhogya(6t.), ramaniya,
vaktavya(3t.), gravaniya, saihkalpaniya.
Des.grdv. vijijnasitavya(i2t.).
Total, 24.
Caus.grdv.
sadhya.
PERIPHRASTIC PERFECT.
vid
Total, 19.
).
Des.vbl.f.w. v/kr: A/man.
(6t.
stha(3t.).
phrases as vara w.
-v/2
brahmacarya w. \/vas,
vr,
The
is
analogous.
Grand
Grand
total of
total of
bulk of the
verb-forms
in
ChU.,
word-occurrences
in
(cir.) 2,925.
ChU. (showing
Conjugation Classes
Ifollow the arrange( Classified by form strictly.
ment of Wh.Gr. The 7tuinbcrs in [ ] are those of the
II.
Verb- List
190
i[2]. %/v/ad, an,
(
as, as,
i, 19,
vid, gas, 2
9!,
stu,
ha, hu.
ha,
man,
vr, gru.
i,
is,
iks, is,
ji,
dab,
raj, rub, labh, vad, vas, 2 vid, vig, vrt, vrs, vraj, gans,
2 91, guc, gri, sthiv, sad,
sprg,
sah,
stha,
ha, hu.
These
last
especially in
two
classes introduce
an unaccented
sion of meanings
to
according
or pass, in
( ?.?),
pr,
among
text,
much
owing
uncertainty,
to the interfu-
Strictly
ChU.
man, mr(
Index
s.v. v-^rdh.
Wh.Gr.
cannot be decided.
APPENDIX
C REPEATED
1,6.1=6.2-5
s.
V. V'as.
cf. 6.G.
7.1-4;
1.6.8=7.6,9.
see
1.8.4=8.5-7;
etc. s.
V.I 9=
20-24.
uvaca, V.i.8=
A".
V. -\/vacr cf.-
PASSAGES
1.9-1
1.
1.13=1. 14.
1.8.8=10.10,11;
11.7,9; "^^^2.1 =: 2.2.
see avid vans, and cf. V.4=5-8.
1.8.4, ^^^
1.11.4=11.6,8;
1
cf.
1.
= 1.3.
=
11.2
3-8; cf. 16.1;
=
1.3.7, etc.
11.8.3
VI.3=4.
11.1.2
11.9.3=9.4-8.
1220 and
11.11
VI.4.i=4.2-4.
VI.5=6,7
21
sec veda
part) ;
\/i vid.
18.1.
(in
s.
v.
(in part),
VI.5. 1=5.2-4.
VI.6.1 =6.2-5.
VI.7.3=7-5A
VI.8.3,4=8.5,6.
^1.8.4=9.4;
11,24.6=24.10,15.
11.24.9=24.14.
111.1 = 2-5;
10.3
3;
14.^
6\
13.3;
111.15.3=15.4-7.
111.16.2=16.4,6.
VII.i6= 17-23.
111.16.3=16.5.
15-
VIII. 2. 1=2.2-10.
IV. 1 = 2.
VIII.3.4= 12.2,3.
IV.4.2=:4.4.
IV.li
1-3;
i*5-3-
VI.9.3=io.2.
16. 2.
VI. 16.1
VII.i
2-i5.
111.6=7-10.
IV.5=6-8
12.3;
VIII.5.i=5.2,3.
see -v/bru.
= i2,i3;
cf.
VIII.7=8,9;
cf.cf.
7, etc.
-
(191)
Repeated Passages
192
The
as
repetitions
a whole
range
in
bulk
from
discussion
with added
To
by ineans of iteration
them
all and show how
equate
terlace would require more sjDace
would be profitable none but the
than
is
details.
in-
desirable or
this stylistic
For
this
jor instances.
Even
a larger
mathematical
way parallel or suggested.
examination of the entire vocabulary shows with more
precision a somewhat narrow scope in its make-up;
but this fails to bring to light the interwoven, close-knit,
though diffuse, type of discourse secured by wholesale
repetition, or the literary flavor thereby imparted.
Repetitions in set form are characteristic of ancient
narration,
One
recalls
which do not
tus,
llterar}'
form.
1.
12.5.
IV. 1.4;
11.24.4,8,12,13,
V.3.1,
ANNOUNCEMENT
THE
Ph.D.
AND
Ph.D.
THE CHANDOGYA^UPANISAD
(/?mrfj)
{A'early heady)
Translated by C. E. Little
(with
Aramaic
By
J. II.
Stevenson
J. II.
Stevenson
{Nearly Nc.uh)
HEBREW SYNONYMS
By Dr. Isidore Lewinthal
ORIGIN
Niket's Herodot
Syntactical,
Based on
{Ready)
Classes
By
J.
H. Stevenson
Cincinnati
New York
Chicago
AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY
:
Introduction to the
Study of
Latin Inscriptions
Bv JAMES C. EGBERT, Jr., Ph.D.
Adjunct Professor of Latin, Columbia University
Half Morocco, large 12mo, 468
pages.
This work
students
in
is
With numerous
illustrations
....
and
Price, $3.50
duction, in
become
so important as to justify
elementary form at
its
intro-
of undergraduate studies.
character of
its
illustrations,
book
there
of
is
the
number and
being over
seven
showing
the
forms
of
the
letters
and the
American Book
New
York
(266}
Cincinnati
Company
Chicago
Latin Dictionaries
the translation of
"
Short, LL.D.
Royal Octavo, 2030 pages
The
SCHOOLS
Cloth, $4 50
This
is
....
$2.00
work
in colleges.
Sheep
.....
any address on
receipt
of the
$4.00
price.
York
(278)
Cincinnati
Chicago
Greek Dictionaries
LIDDELL AND SCOTT'S GREEK-ENGLISH LEXICON
Revised and Enlarged. Compiled by Henry George Liddei.l,
D.D., and Robert Scott, D.D., assisted by Henry Drislek,
LL.D. Large Quarto, 1794 pages. Sheep
$10.00
The present edition of this great work has been thoroughly revised,
and large additions made to it. The editors have been favored with the
co-operation of many scholars and several important articles have been
.
entirely rewritten.
by students
in
Secondaiy
NEW TESTAMENT
C. D.
YoNGE.
Edited by
Sheep
$4.50
any address on
New
Edition.
....
receipt
$1.10
of the price,
York
(3'o)
Cincinnati
Chicago
University of Toronto
Library
o
5^
,i3
DO NOT
REMOVE
CO
THE
CO
a;
CARD
H
efl
FROM
H
-P
CD
<U
-p
CO
bo
to
<t|
vo
6^3
THIS